Selected quad for the lemma: lord_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
lord_n john_n thomas_n viscount_n 16,382 5 11.3901 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A68449 A catholike and ecclesiasticall exposition of the holy Gospell after S. Iohn. Gathered out of all the singuler and approued deuines (which the Lorde hath giuen vnto his Church) by Augustine Marlorate. And translated out of Latin into Englishe by Thomas Timme minister. Seene and allovved according to the order appoynted; Novi Testamenti catholica expositio ecclesiastica. English. Selections Marlorat, Augustin, 1506-1562.; Tymme, Thomas, d. 1620. 1575 (1575) STC 17406; ESTC S114256 780,235 632

There are 44 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

❧_o a_o catholic_a and_o ecclesiastical_a exposition_n of_o the_o holy_a gospel_n after_o s._n john_n gather_v out_o of_o all_o the_o singular_a and_o approve_a divines_n which_o the_o lord_n have_v give_v unto_o his_o church_n by_o augustine_n marlorate_v and_o translate_v out_o of_o latin_a into_o english_a by_o thomas_n timme_n minister_n see_v and_o allow_v according_a to_o the_o order_n appoint_v ¶_o imprint_v at_o london_n by_o thomas_n marsh_n anno_fw-la domini_fw-la 1575._o ¶_o to_o the_o right_n honourable_a lord_n thomas_n earl_n of_o sussex_n viscount_n fitzwalter_n lord_n of_o egremont_n and_o of_o burnell_n one_o of_o the_o queen_n majesty_n honourable_a privy_a counsel_n and_o lord_n high_a chamberlain_n of_o her_o house_n of_o the_o noble_a order_n of_o the_o garter_n knight_n justice_n of_o oyer_n of_o the_o forest_n park_n warrayne_n and_o chase_n from_o trent_n southwarde_a and_o captain_n of_o the_o gentleman_n pensioner_n and_o to_o the_o right_n honourable_a lady_n his_o wife_n increase_n of_o honour_n and_o true_a knowledge_n in_o christ_n jesus_n the_o great_a profit_n which_o the_o christian_a mind_n be_v to_o receyve_v by_o read_v this_o book_n be_v the_o cause_n why_o i_o take_v the_o pain_n to_o translate_v it_o out_o of_o latin_a into_o the_o english_a tongue_n and_o the_o recommend_v thereof_o the_o more_o diligent_o to_o have_v it_o read_v be_v the_o occasion_n which_o move_v i_o to_o dedicate_v my_o part_n therein_o to_o your_o honour_n for_o what_o english_a man_n be_v there_o which_o will_v not_o think_v it_o a_o book_n most_o worthy_a the_o read_n which_o he_o see_v warrant_v by_o your_o name_n the_o honourable_a and_o general_a report_n whereof_o hartn_v i_o to_o present_v it_o unto_o you_o wherein_o you_o shall_v find_v the_o deep_a and_o divine_a evangelist_n saint_n john_n the_o marrow_n of_o all_o commentary_n upon_o he_o under_o the_o name_n of_o marlorates_n collection_n last_o and_o least_o my_o faithful_a travel_n to_o turn_v they_o both_o to_o the_o use_n of_o my_o country_n the_o thing_n i_o know_v your_o honour_n will_v like_v well_o because_o as_o i_o hear_v you_o can_v skilful_o judge_v so_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o you_o have_v make_v your_o choice_n what_o to_o read_v which_o so_o much_o brute_v the_o credit_n of_o your_o ability_n find_v out_o by_o effect_n as_o for_o my_o labour_n may_v it_o please_v your_o honour_n to_o like_v it_o as_o come_v from_o one_o which_o catch_v with_o the_o commendation_n of_o your_o learning_n and_o wisdom_n general_o noyze_v can_v not_o but_o offer_v myself_o to_o you_o as_o the_o wonder_a queen_n of_o saba_n can_v not_o rest_v till_o she_o have_v see_v salomon_n person_n of_o who_o wisdom_n she_o have_v hard_o so_o much_o and_o withal_o i_o think_v it_o good_a in_o offer_v my_o labour_n to_o your_o honour_n to_o join_v you_o both_o together_o think_v with_o myself_o that_o it_o must_v needs_o follow_v that_o such_o skill_n and_o judgement_n be_v in_o so_o honourable_a a_o man_n must_v needs_o by_o society_n of_o match_n work_n like_o effect_n in_o so_o honourable_a a_o mate_n wherefore_o not_o to_o trouble_v your_o honour_n with_o long_a speech_n i_o take_v my_o leave_n recommend_v my_o poor_a pain_n to_o your_o honour_n protection_n the_o recompense_n whereof_o you_o shall_v receive_v in_o your_o read_n of_o the_o book_n who_o fruit_n will_v bring_v by_o god_n grace_n health_n to_o your_o soul_n and_o continuance_n of_o your_o honor._n your_o honour_n most_o humble_a thomas_n timme_n ❧_o a_o catholic_a and_o ecclesiastical_a exposition_n of_o the_o holy_a gospel_n after_o s._n john_n the_o argument_n although_o the_o word_n of_o god_n depend_v or_o hang_v not_o upon_o the_o authority_n of_o man_n yet_o notwithstanding_o 4._o 1._o john_n 4._o as_o it_o be_v profitable_a to_o prove_v the_o spirit_n whether_o they_o be_v of_o god_n or_o no_o so_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o they_o which_o take_v upon_o they_o the_o office_n of_o teach_v in_o the_o church_n do_v keep_v their_o authority_n in_o the_o same_o to_o the_o end_n the_o testimony_n which_o they_o bring_v concern_v the_o truth_n may_v more_o firm_o abide_v with_o the_o faithful_a but_o true_o this_o gospel_n which_o john_n bring_v be_v nothing_o else_o than_o a_o testimony_n of_o christ_n jesus_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o life_n of_o man_n the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n the_o bread_n of_o life_n which_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n the_o resurrection_n the_o way_n the_o truth_n and_o the_o life_n the_o good_a shephearde_n of_o the_o sheep_n and_o to_o be_v short_a the_o only_a saviour_n of_o the_o world_n it_o be_v convenient_a therefore_o that_o we_o know_v who_o this_o be_v which_o so_o bear_v witness_n of_o he_o which_o be_v conversaunt_a among_o man_n have_v the_o show_n of_o a_o servant_n 2._o philip._n 2._o be_v in_o the_o similytude_n of_o man_n and_o find_v in_o his_o apparel_n as_o a_o man_n be_v tempt_v in_o all_o thing_n as_o we_o be_v and_o yet_o without_o sin_n this_o one_o witness_n be_v to_o be_v credit_v of_o we_o even_o as_o well_o as_o a_o thousand_o 4._o heb._n 4._o because_o he_o be_v one_o that_o write_v these_o thing_n to_o the_o edify_a of_o the_o church_n and_o for_o the_o common_a profit_n of_o all_o man_n not_o by_o the_o common_a fame_n and_o report_n of_o other_o man_n but_o by_o that_o which_o be_v most_o sure_a and_o infallible_a namely_o by_o that_o which_o he_o hear_v and_o see_v himself_o even_o as_o he_o himself_o speak_v of_o himself_o in_o the_o end_n of_o this_o history_n say_v 19_o john_n 19_o he_o which_o see_v bare_a witness_n and_o his_o witness_n be_v true_a and_o he_o know_v that_o he_o speak_v truth_n that_o you_o may_v believe_v and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n he_o say_v that_o which_o be_v from_o the_o beginning_n which_o we_o have_v hear_v which_o we_o have_v see_v which_o we_o have_v look_v upon_o and_o our_o hand_n have_v handle_v of_o the_o word_n of_o life_n we_o show_v unto_o you_o for_o this_o writer_n of_o the_o sacred_a history_n 1._o 1._o john_n 1._o or_o gospel_n be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o brother_n of_o the_o apostle_n james_n bear_v in_o galilee_n and_o the_o son_n of_o zebede_n and_o solomon_n as_o many_o think_v of_o who_o call_v to_o the_o office_n of_o a_o apostle_n s._n matthew_n in_o the_o four_o chapter_n make_v mention_v apt_o therefore_o he_o call_v this_o history_n the_o gospel_n for_o he_o do_v more_o large_o and_o plain_o set_v forth_o the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o mystery_n of_o our_o redemption_n than_o the_o other_o evangelist_n the_o which_o thing_n be_v forseen_v by_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n christ_n call_v this_o our_o evangelist_n and_o his_o brother_n also_o the_o son_n of_o thunder_n or_o as_o mark_n have_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d furthermore_o the_o other_o three_o evangelist_n be_v very_o large_a inset_a forth_o the_o life_n and_o death_n of_o christ_n but_o our_o evangelist_n short_o touch_v those_o thing_n stand_v more_o upon_o that_o doctrine_n by_o the_o which_o both_o the_o office_n of_o christ_n and_o also_o the_o power_n of_o his_o death_n &_o resurrection_n be_v explicate_v and_o to_o be_v short_a all_o of_o they_o seek_v to_o set_v forth_o christ_n the_o first_o three_o namely_o matthew_n mark_v and_o luke_n do_v set_v before_o we_o if_o i_o may_v so_o speak_v the_o body_n but_o john_n the_o soul_n insomuch_o that_o this_o gospel_n may_v true_o be_v call_v the_o key_n which_o open_v the_o door_n to_o come_v to_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o other_o three_o for_o who_o soever_o shall_v attain_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n power_n the_o which_o be_v here_o cunning_o express_v he_o at_o the_o length_n shall_v read_v with_o profit_n that_o which_o the_o other_o evangelist_n have_v write_v as_o concern_v the_o redeemer_n neither_o be_v it_o do_v without_o the_o singular_a counsel_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o the_o gospel_n write_v by_o matthew_n mark_v and_o luke_n shall_v be_v publish_v and_o set_v forth_o in_o the_o world_n before_o that_o which_o be_v write_v by_o john_n for_o the_o weak_a ear_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v not_o capable_a of_o so_o great_a thunder_n therefore_o it_o be_v convenient_a that_o the_o incarnation_n of_o christ_n shall_v first_o of_o all_o be_v set_v forth_o his_o nativity_n describe_v and_o how_o according_a to_o the_o scripture_n he_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o juda_n and_o of_o the_o stock_n of_o david_n by_o what_o document_n he_o prove_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o true_a messiah_n how_o according_a to_o the_o scripture_n he_o suffer_v and_o be_v bury_v and_o rise_v again_o the_o third_o
day_n and_o show_v himself_o alive_a again_o to_o his_o disciple_n after_o that_o ascend_n into_o the_o heaven_n that_o so_o faith_n increase_v by_o little_a and_o little_a there_o may_v be_v a_o way_n make_v to_o receyve_v the_o more_o high_a document_n of_o the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n but_o there_o be_v many_o that_o think_v that_o john_n be_v special_o lead_v to_o wirte_n to_o this_o end_n and_o purpose_n namely_o that_o he_o may_v defend_v the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n against_o the_o wicked_a blasphemye_n of_o ebion_n cerinthus_n and_o carpocrates_n but_o what_o soever_o occasion_n he_o have_v then_o to_o write_v there_o be_v notwithstanding_o no_o doubt_n but_o that_o god_n have_v a_o far_a regard_n to_o his_o church_n he_o do_v therefore_o so_o guide_v the_o pen_n of_o the_o evangelist_n to_o write_v that_o the_o part_n be_v divide_v among_o they_o he_o may_v bring_v the_o whole_a body_n to_o a_o perfect_a work_n and_o whereas_o they_o have_v place_v john_n in_o the_o four_o seat_n it_o be_v do_v upon_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o time_n in_o the_o which_o he_o write_v namely_o when_o he_o be_v in_o exile_n or_o when_o he_o be_v call_v back_o again_o as_o some_o affirm_v from_o the_o death_n of_o domitian_n ❧_o a_o catholic_a exposition_n upon_o the_o gospel_n of_o saint_n john_n the_o first_o chapter_n in_o the_o beginning_n be_v the_o worde_n and_o the_o word_n be_v with_o god_n and_o god_n be_v the_o worde_n in_o the_o beginning_n be_v the_o word_n chr._n all_o the_o other_o evangelist_n begin_v at_o the_o incarnation_n john_n pretermit_v the_o conception_n nativity_n education_n and_o grow_v of_o christ_n set_v before_o we_o even_o at_o the_o first_o his_o eternal_a generation_n say_v in_o the_o beginning_n be_v the_o word_n b._n for_o to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v express_v the_o divinity_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n he_o call_v he_o in_o his_o epistle_n also_o the_o word_n of_o life_n which_o be_v from_o the_o beginning_n 1_o 1._o ihon._n 1_o c._n and_o by_o this_o exordium_n or_o preface_n he_o do_v declare_v the_o eternal_a divinity_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v know_v that_o god_n be_v eternal_a which_o be_v make_v manifest_a in_o the_o flesh_n 3_o 1._o timo._n 3_o but_o this_o be_v the_o purpose_n of_o the_o evangelist_n to_o show_v that_o the_o restore_n of_o mankind_n to_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n and_o to_o everlasting_a righteousness_n must_v needs_o be_v bring_v to_o pass_v by_o the_o son_n of_o god_n see_v by_o his_o power_n all_o thing_n be_v create_v as_o well_o in_o heaven_n as_o in_o earth_n both_o thing_n visible_a and_o invisible_a whether_o they_o be_v majesty_n or_o lordship_n either_o rule_n or_o power_n see_v he_o alone_o breathe_v life_n and_o strength_n into_o all_o creature_n and_o continue_v they_o in_o their_o estate_n 1_o collos_n 1_o and_o special_o in_o man_n himself_o he_o have_v make_v a_o singular_a show_n and_o proof_n both_o of_o his_o power_n and_o also_o of_o his_o grace_n insomuch_o that_o although_o adam_n fall_v and_o transgress_v yet_o for_o all_o that_o he_o cease_v not_o to_o be_v love_v liberal_a and_o merciful_a unto_o his_o posterity_n r._n and_o this_o be_v the_o purpose_n of_o the_o evangelist_n until_o he_o come_v to_o these_o word_n contain_v in_o the_o sixth_o verse_n there_o be_v a_o man_n send_v of_o god._n etc._n etc._n in_o the_o which_o he_o do_v first_o of_o all_o teach_v the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n by_o the_o which_o all_o thing_n be_v create_v and_o then_o he_o set_v before_o we_o his_o humanity_n the_o which_o to_o the_o faithful_a be_v the_o way_n of_o recreation_n or_o create_v again_o for_o it_o do_v very_o well_o agree_v that_o they_o which_o be_v create_v by_o christ_n shall_v also_o by_o he_o be_v create_v again_o c._n but_o whereas_o he_o call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o word_n this_o seem_v to_o be_v the_o true_a and_o simple_a cause_n namely_o for_o that_o first_o of_o all_o he_o be_v the_o eternal_a wisdom_n and_o will_n of_o god_n second_o the_o very_a express_a image_n of_o his_o purpose_n and_o counsel_n for_o as_o the_o word_n be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o character_n or_o declaration_n of_o the_o mind_n in_o man_n even_o so_o this_o be_v not_o without_o cause_n also_o attribute_v unto_o god_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v say_v to_o express_v himself_o by_o his_o word_n a._n therefore_o whether_o you_o call_v the_o word_n logon_fw-la in_o greek_a or_o as_o erasmus_n have_v sermonem_fw-la beware_v lest_o you_o think_v that_o his_o proper_a essence_n be_v true_o as_o it_o be_v in_o itself_o express_v by_o this_o appellation_n m._n for_o it_o be_v a_o metaphorical_a speech_n which_o be_v apply_v to_o our_o capacity_n and_o understanding_n may_v describe_v unto_o we_o some_o shadow_n of_o that_o thing_n of_o the_o which_o he_o mind_v here_o to_o speak_v for_o it_o be_v take_v of_o the_o similitude_n of_o our_o mind_n the_o which_o although_o it_o rule_v the_o whole_a man_n yet_o notwithstanding_o it_o be_v invisible_a and_o unknowen_a except_o the_o purpose_n and_o counsel_n which_o it_o have_v conceyve_v be_v bewray_v and_o make_v manifest_a unto_o other_o by_o word_n by_o which_o in_o deed_n a_o certain_a image_n of_o our_o mind_n be_v set_v before_o other_o to_o behold_v even_o so_o god_n also_o which_o be_v that_o omnipotent_a power_n the_o creator_n and_o preserver_n of_o all_o thing_n who_o for_o that_o he_o pierce_v all_o thing_n be_v call_v of_o the_o greek_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d theon_n be_v compare_v so_o far_o as_o that_o incomprehensible_a nature_n of_o the_o divine_a majesty_n may_v be_v shadow_v to_o the_o mind_n by_o which_o all_o this_o world_n be_v govern_v and_o the_o lord_n christ_n his_o only_o beget_v son_n be_v compare_v to_o the_o word_n because_o by_o he_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n be_v reveal_v to_o mortal_a man_n 1._o colos_n 1._o so_o paul_n call_v christ_n the_o image_n of_o the_o invisible_a god_n so_o christ_n himself_o say_v 14._o john_n 14._o philip_n he_o which_o see_v i_o see_v my_o father_n also_o and_o again_o no_o man_n come_v to_o my_o father_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o the_o knowledge_n and_o fellowship_n of_o the_o father_n but_o by_o i_o 11._o john_n 11._o also_o it_o be_v say_v no_o man_n have_v see_v god_n at_o any_o time_n the_o son_n which_o be_v in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o father_n have_v show_v he_o unto_o us._n c._n therefore_o as_o god_n do_v manifest_v himself_o in_o save_v the_o world_n by_o this_o word_n even_o so_o he_o have_v the_o same_o in_o his_o will_n and_o purpose_n at_o the_o first_o that_o there_o may_v be_v a_o double_a relation_n the_o first_o to_o god_n the_o second_o to_o man_n a._n lest_o any_o man_n shall_v with_o seruetus_fw-la imagine_v that_o this_o eternal_a word_n have_v his_o beginning_n when_o it_o be_v pronounce_v and_o put_v forth_o in_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n as_o though_o in_o deed_n it_o be_v not_o before_o that_o time_n that_o his_o power_n be_v know_v by_o the_o eternal_a work_n but_o our_o evangelist_n teach_v here_o another_o manner_n of_o matter_n not_o assign_v to_o the_o word_n any_o beginning_n of_o time_n but_o say_v that_o it_o be_v from_o the_o beginning_n he_o go_v beyond_o all_o age_n and_o time_n for_o he_o say_v in_o the_o beginning_n be_v the_o word_n r._n in_o what_o beginning_n either_o we_o must_v simp_o understande_v in_o principio_fw-la or_o in_o the_o beginning_n to_o be_v that_o beginning_n which_o the_o latin_n call_v inprimis_fw-la or_o at_o the_o first_o either_o without_o the_o preposition_n in_o as_o principio_fw-la or_o primum_fw-la and_o so_o to_o have_v it_o limit_v and_o comprehend_v in_o time_n or_o else_o to_o say_v in_o the_o beginning_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o word_n be_v without_o the_o compass_n of_o time_n incomprehensible_a and_o unspeakable_a and_o so_o the_o word_n be_v with_o that_o begin_n in_o the_o which_o god_n say_v fiat_n lux_fw-la let_v there_o be_v light_n &_o howbeit_o he_o be_v never_o without_o be_v 1_o gene._n 1_o there_o be_v never_o any_o time_n in_o the_o which_o he_o be_v not_o for_o he_o be_v the_o brightness_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o father_n 1._o hebr._n 1._o and_o the_o express_a image_n of_o his_o substance_n he_o be_v never_o absent_a from_o the_o father_n nor_o never_o out_o of_o his_o sight_n for_o thus_o he_o say_v in_o solomon_n 8._o prou._n 8._o the_o lord_n have_v possess_v i_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o way_n i_o be_v before_o his_o work_n of_o old_a i_o be_v set_v up_o from_o everlasting_a from_o the_o beginning_n and_o before_o the_o earth_n b._n in_o the_o which_o place_n solomon_n by_o the_o name_n of_o wisdom_n mean_v the_o power_n
the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v manifest_v in_o the_o flesh_n for_o christ_n do_v not_o only_o offer_v and_o set_v himself_o before_o the_o eye_n of_o man_n to_o be_v see_v but_o he_o will_v also_o be_v know_v by_o the_o testimony_n and_o doctrine_n of_o john_n yea_o god_n the_o father_n send_v he_o before_o to_o be_v a_o witness_n to_o his_o son_n christ_n to_o the_o end_n all_o man_n may_v the_o more_o easy_o receyve_v the_o salvation_n offer_v of_o he_o r._n even_o as_o therefore_o the_o lord_n god_n when_o he_o go_v about_o to_o make_v the_o world_n he_o reveal_v himself_o out_o of_o the_o profound_a darkness_n that_o be_v to_o say_v out_o of_o nothing_o by_o the_o word_n even_o so_o when_o he_o go_v about_o to_o restore_v the_o faithful_a and_o to_o repair_v his_o church_n he_o send_v his_o son_n appear_v outwardlye_o and_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o man_n even_o as_o if_o he_o have_v be_v god_n in_o no_o point_n until_o at_o the_o length_n the_o glory_n of_o his_o godhead_n more_o and_o more_o appear_v for_o he_o be_v cover_v with_o the_o fragillitye_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o the_o shame_n of_o the_o cross_n least_o at_o the_o first_o sight_n he_o shall_v be_v know_v the_o which_o thing_n be_v foreshow_v by_o esay_n say_v 53_o esay_n 53_o he_o be_v despise_v and_o reject_v of_o man_n he_o be_v a_o man_n full_a of_o sorrow_n and_o have_v experience_n of_o infirmity_n we_o hide_v as_o it_o be_v our_o face_n from_o he_o he_o be_v despise_v and_o we_o esteem_v he_o not_o therefore_o when_o christ_n shall_v come_v in_o the_o flesh_n and_o cover_v with_o the_o shame_n of_o the_o cross_n he_o do_v not_o amiss_o to_o send_v before_o his_o face_n a_o witness_n for_o so_o also_o the_o lord_n foreshow_v by_o malachy_n that_o it_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v say_v 3_o mala._n 3_o behold_v i_o send_v my_o angel_n and_o he_o shall_v prepare_v the_o way_n before_o thy_o face_n this_o be_v john_n the_o baptist_n which_o be_v send_v of_o god_n first_o that_o he_o may_v bear_v witness_n of_o christ_n although_o his_o grace_n need_v no_o testimony_n for_o the_o truth_n be_v a_o sufficient_a testimony_n of_o he_o as_o he_o himself_o declare_v in_o the_o five_o chapter_n say_v 5_o john_n 5_o you_o send_v to_o john_n and_o he_o bare_a witness_n of_o the_o truth_n but_o i_o receyve_v not_o the_o testimony_n of_o man_n but_o i_o speak_v these_o thing_n that_o you_o may_v be_v safe_a c._n therefore_o this_o our_o witness_n be_v not_o ordain_v because_o of_o christ_n or_o for_o christ_n sake_n aug._n for_o because_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v so_o make_v man_n that_o the_o godhead_n lie_v hide_v in_o he_o there_o be_v send_v before_o a_o great_a and_o excellent_a man_n by_o who_o testimony_n he_o may_v be_v find_v more_o than_o a_o man_n and_o how_o can_v this_o man_n speak_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n he_o answer_v to_o that_o and_o say_v that_o he_o be_v send_v of_o god_n c._n by_o the_o which_o word_n the_o evangelist_n do_v not_o confirm_v the_o call_n of_o john_n but_o do_v only_o make_v mention_n of_o the_o same_o by_o the_o way_n for_o this_o be_v not_o a_o sufficient_a certainty_n or_o warrant_v when_o man_n that_o run_v of_o themselves_o boast_v themselves_o to_o be_v send_v of_o god_n but_o the_o evangelist_n speak_v hereafter_o somewhat_o more_o of_o this_o witness_n think_v it_o sufficient_a in_o one_o word_n to_o show_v that_o he_o come_v not_o but_o by_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n after_o that_o we_o shall_v see_v how_o he_o affirm_v god_n to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o his_o ministry_n 3._o math._n 1._o math._n 3._o luke_n 3._o m._n and_o he_o begin_v this_o part_n very_o well_o of_o the_o forerunner_n john_n as_o also_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o evangeliste_n do_v for_o from_o the_o time_n of_o johns_n baptism_n that_o light_n have_v take_v upon_o it_o flesh_n 2._o luke_n 2._o math._n 2._o begin_v to_o be_v reveal_v and_o although_o at_o the_o time_n of_o his_o nativity_n certain_a beam_n begin_v to_o shine_v of_o that_o light_n as_o we_o may_v see_v in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o shepeherd_n of_o simeon_n of_o anna_n and_o of_o the_o wiseman_n yet_o notwithstanding_o whatsoever_o light_n have_v shine_v it_o vanish_v away_o by_o and_o by_o again_o and_o be_v almost_o thirty_o year_n even_o to_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o preach_n obscure_v and_o dareken_v again_o for_o this_o testimony_n of_o john_n be_v reserve_v &_o keep_v even_o until_o the_o same_o time_n in_o the_o which_o christ_n will_v reveal_v himself_o to_o the_o world_n by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o by_o the_o work_n of_o miracle_n that_o he_o be_v the_o forerunner_n of_o christ_n may_v prepare_v the_o way_n before_o he_o the_o which_o thing_n john_n the_o baptist_n sufficient_o declare_v by_o these_o word_n say_v there_o stand_v one_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o you_o who_o you_o know_v not_o objection_n c._n but_o if_o any_o man_n object_n that_o the_o testimony_n of_o john_n be_v to_o weak_a be_v but_o a_o man_n that_o christ_n thereby_o shall_v be_v prove_v to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n we_o may_v quick_o answer_v answer_n answer_n that_o john_n the_o baptist_n be_v not_o cite_v as_o a_o private_a witness_n but_o because_o he_o be_v endue_v with_o authority_n from_o god_n he_o bear_v rather_o the_o person_n of_o a_o angel_n than_o of_o a_o man_n therefore_o he_o be_v not_o beautify_v or_o commend_v with_o the_o title_n of_o his_o own_o virtue_n but_o with_o this_o one_o that_o he_o be_v the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o mighty_a god._n chr._n judge_n therefore_o none_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v speak_v by_o he_o to_o be_v of_o man_n for_o he_o speak_v not_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v his_o own_o but_o the_o thing_n that_o belong_v to_o he_o that_o send_v he_o and_o therefore_o he_o be_v call_v by_o the_o prophet_n a_o angel_n for_o it_o be_v the_o office_n of_o a_o angel_n to_o speak_v nothing_o of_o his_o own_o but_o that_o for_o which_o he_o be_v send_v c._n but_o we_o must_v note_v that_o the_o same_o which_o be_v speak_v of_o john_n be_v require_v to_o be_v in_o all_o the_o teacher_n of_o the_o church_n name_o that_o they_o be_v call_v of_o god_n that_o the_o authority_n of_o teach_v may_v be_v found_v on_o no_o other_o than_o on_o god_n himself_o for_o the_o prophet_n speak_v against_o such_o which_o run_v be_v not_o send_v of_o god_n 10._o jere._n 23._o rom._n 10._o they_o run_v say_v he_o and_o i_o send_v they_o not_o again_o it_o be_v say_v how_o shall_v they_o preach_v except_o they_o be_v send_v and_o to_o be_v send_v of_o god_n be_v to_o do_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n who_o name_n be_v john_n c._n the_o name_n be_v here_o express_v not_o only_o to_o describe_v the_o man_n but_o also_o because_o it_o be_v give_v to_o he_o upon_o consideration_n of_o the_o matter_n itself_o m._n for_o the_o very_a name_n do_v contain_v in_o itself_o the_o signification_n of_o grace_n and_o just_o he_o obtain_v this_o name_n which_o shall_v be_v the_o foreronner_fw-fr and_o first_o preacher_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n which_o be_v offer_v to_o the_o world_n by_o christ_n and_o therefore_o by_o god_n appointment_n by_o the_o angel_n he_o receyve_v this_o name_n before_o he_o be_v bear_v and_o that_o not_o without_o the_o wonderful_a admiration_n of_o his_o parent_n 1._o luke_n 1._o c._n but_o the_o lord_n have_v respect_n to_o the_o office_n to_o the_o which_o he_o ordain_v john_n when_o he_o command_v he_o to_o be_v so_o call_v by_o the_o angel_n that_o thereby_o all_o man_n may_v know_v he_o to_o be_v a_o proclaimer_n of_o the_o divine_a grace_n of_o god_n 7._o the_o same_o come_v for_o a_o witness_n to_o bear_v witness_n of_o the_o light_n that_o all_o man_n through_o he_o may_v believe_v the_o same_o come_v for_o a_o m._n now_o consequentlye_o he_o teach_v to_o what_o purpose_n john_n be_v send_v of_o god_n he_o come_v say_v he_o to_o testify_v c._n that_o he_o may_v prepare_v a_o church_n unto_o christ_n for_o he_o invite_v and_o call_v all_o man_n unto_o christ_n do_v sufficient_o declare_v that_o he_o come_v not_o for_o his_o own_o cause_n but_o to_o know_v from_o whence_o to_o who_o &_o what_o time_n john_n come_v that_o which_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o third_o of_o luke_n may_v serve_v this_o our_o evangelist_n after_o he_o have_v say_v that_o he_o be_v send_v of_o god_n add_v this_o only_a which_o be_v more_o necessary_a name_o to_o what_o purpose_n he_o come_v be_v send_v of_o god_n namely_o to_o bear_v witness_n m._n the_o prophet_n also_o which_o be_v before_o john_n come_v to_o witness_v that_o be_v to_o say_v
to_o bear_v witness_n of_o the_o incredulity_n and_o impiety_n of_o the_o israelite_n but_o this_o john_n come_v to_o testify_v of_o the_o light_n christ_n that_o be_v to_o say_v he_o come_v to_o this_o end_n that_o he_o may_v show_v the_o rise_n of_o this_o light_n and_o may_v be_v the_o foreronner_fw-fr and_o setter_n forth_o of_o the_o same_o to_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n for_o he_o who_o the_o prophet_n foreshow_v shall_v come_v john_n the_o baptist_n point_v out_o with_o the_o finger_n that_o all_o man_n through_o he_o may_v believe_v m._n he_o say_v not_o simple_o that_o all_o man_n may_v believe_v but_o he_o add_v throw_v he_o that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o all_o man_n be_v move_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o john_n and_o beléeve_v his_o testimony_n may_v know_v this_o light_n and_o embrace_v the_o same_o it_o be_v necessary_a therefore_o that_o such_o a_o witness_n shall_v be_v send_v as_o the_o israelite_n may_v geve_v credit_n unto_o for_o this_o cause_n he_o be_v so_o endue_v with_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n that_o he_o make_v all_o man_n to_o behold_v he_o he_o be_v say_v our_o saviour_n christ_n speak_v of_o john_n 1_o ihon._n 5_o math._n 3_o math._n 11_o mat._n 1_o luk._n 1_o a_o burn_a and_o shine_a light_n for_o all_o jerusalem_n go_v out_o to_o he_o he_o neither_o eat_v bread_n nor_o drink_v wine_n his_o meat_n be_v locust_n and_o wild_a honey_n his_o apparel_n of_o camelle_n here_o and_o a_o girdle_n of_o a_o skin_n about_o his_o loin_n he_o be_v endue_v with_o the_o spirit_n and_o power_n of_o helias_n he_o call_v all_o man_n with_o severity_n to_o repentance_n spare_v neither_o the_o high_a priest_n scribes_z 3_o luke_n 3_o nor_o pharisee_n who_o he_o call_v generation_n of_o viper_n he_o deal_v severelye_o with_o herode_fw-la the_o king_n 14._o math._n 14._o as_o we_o may_v read_v in_o mathewe_n therefore_o the_o testimony_n of_o john_n tend_v to_o this_o end_n which_o he_o bear_v of_o christ_n that_o we_o believe_v in_o he_o faith_n be_v that_o by_o the_o which_o we_o behold_v this_o light_n know_v the_o same_o and_o embrace_v it_o by_o this_o grace_n be_v set_v forth_o to_o the_o world_n not_o only_o the_o testimony_n which_o john_n bear_v concern_v christ_n but_o also_o the_o testimony_n of_o all_o the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n both_o by_o voice_n and_o writing_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o end_n of_o this_o gospel_n these_o thing_n be_v write_v that_o you_o may_v believe_v that_o jesu_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o what_o be_v the_o profit_n of_o this_o faith_n the_o profit_n say_v he_o of_o this_o faith_n be_v that_o you_o beléeve_a might_n have_v life_n through_o his_o name_n moreover_o the_o grace_n of_o this_o light_n 2_o 1._o tim._n 2_o must_v be_v set_v before_o all_o man_n for_o god_n will_v have_v all_o man_n to_o be_v save_v and_o to_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o the_o truth_n also_o it_o be_v sad_a 3_o luke_n 3_o preach_v you_o the_o gospel_n to_o everye_o creature_n etc._n etc._n b._n whereupon_o saint_n john_n baptist_n preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o the_o soldier_n and_o publican_n 8._o he_o be_v not_o that_o light_n but_o be_v send_v to_o bear_v witness_n of_o the_o light_n he_o be_v not_o that_o light_n b._n by_o this_o new_a preach_v of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n many_o thought_n that_o this_o john_n be_v the_o same_o light_n of_o the_o world_n which_o be_v common_o talk_v of_o &_o the_o same_o word_n also_o by_o which_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v but_o the_o evangelist_n say_v he_o be_v not_o the_o same_o light_n m._n for_o we_o read_v that_o he_o have_v so_o great_a authority_n a-among_a the_o israelite_n that_o they_o say_v among_o themselves_o be_v not_o this_o christ_n lest_o therefore_o his_o exceed_a brightness_n shall_v obscure_v the_o glory_n of_o christ_n 3_o luke_n 3_o the_o evangelist_n teach_v that_o he_o be_v not_o the_o light_n m._n he_o be_v the_o light_n truelye_o but_o not_o the_o same_o light_n whereof_o it_o be_v here_o speak_v which_o be_v the_o light_n of_o man_n the_o well_o of_o all_o light_n the_o word_n and_o the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o apostle_n also_o be_v call_v the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n 5_o math._n 5_o and_o paul_n call_v the_o beléeve_v in_o christ_n the_o light_n you_o be_v sometime_o say_v he_o darkness_n but_o now_o be_v you_o light_v in_o the_o lord_n 5._o ephe._n 5._o but_o they_o be_v so_o call_v in_o another_o manner_n of_o respect_n c._n for_o all_o the_o godly_a be_v call_v light_n in_o the_o lord_n because_o they_o be_v lighten_v with_o his_o spirit_n do_v not_o only_o see_v to_o themselves_o but_o also_o do_v direct_v other_o by_o their_o example_n into_o the_o way_n of_o salvation_n the_o apostle_n also_o be_v special_o call_v the_o light_n because_o they_o prefer_v the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o drive_v away_o the_o darkness_n of_o the_o world_n but_o the_o evangelist_n here_o intreat_v of_o the_o only_a and_o everlasting_a well_o of_o light_n m._n john_n therefore_o be_v a_o light_n but_o he_o be_v set_v on_o fire_n and_o illuminate_v by_o this_o light_n for_o as_o the_o mountain_n in_o the_o morning_n before_o the_o sun_n appear_v unto_o man_n be_v lighten_v with_o his_o beam_n even_o so_o be_v all_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n light_n in_o the_o lord_n of_o who_o they_o be_v illuminate_v r._n wherefore_o this_o place_n put_v a_o difference_n not_o only_o between_o christ_n and_o john_n but_o also_o between_o christ_n and_o all_o the_o saint_n patriarch_n prophet_n apostle_n and_o martyr_n for_o neither_o john_n nor_o any_o other_o of_o all_o the_o saint_n be_v the_o true_a light_n but_o be_v only_a proclaimer_n and_o setter_n forth_o of_o the_o true_a light_n m._n let_v we_o therefore_o hereby_o learn_v to_o esteem_v of_o the_o saint_n as_o they_o be_v make_v and_o appoint_v of_o god_n and_o no_o otherwise_o but_o be_v send_v to_o bear_v witness_n of_o the_o light_n a._n john_n therefore_o repeat_v this_o again_o to_o show_v what_o man_n ought_v to_o judge_v of_o they_o which_o be_v send_v of_o god_n preach_v the_o word_n unto_o the_o world_n lest_o we_o attribute_v any_o thing_n of_o that_o unto_o they_o which_o pertain_v only_o to_o the_o son_n of_o god_n m._n for_o great_a be_v the_o wilful_a folly_n of_o the_o world_n in_o this_o point_n either_o it_o reject_v altogether_o the_o witness_n of_o christ_n and_o despise_v they_o or_o else_o it_o geve_v reverence_n and_o honour_v they_o above_o christ_n the_o jew_n at_o the_o first_o receyve_v john_n for_o the_o messiah_n christ_n himself_o which_o be_v not_o christ_n &_o yet_o they_o receyve_v not_o the_o testimony_n which_o he_o bear_v unto_o christ_n even_o so_o the_o corinthian_n little_a or_o nothing_o at_o all_o regard_v paul_n that_o singular_a preacher_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n but_o they_o make_v more_o of_o the_o false_a apostle_n than_o appertain_v to_o the_o mynister_n of_o of_o christ_n 4_o 1._o cor._n 4_o insomuch_o that_o the_o apostle_n be_v fain_o to_o show_v they_o what_o they_o ought_v to_o think_v of_o the_o minister_n of_o christ_n and_o what_o not_o and_o we_o ourselves_o have_v have_v experience_n what_o great_a estimation_n the_o world_n have_v have_v and_o yet_o have_v of_o dead_a saint_n and_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o other_o and_o how_o little_a it_o regard_v the_o true_a minister_n of_o christ_n 9_o he_o be_v the_o true_a light_n lighten_v everye_o man_n that_o come_v into_o the_o world_n he_o be_v the_o true_a light_n c._n the_o true_a light_n be_v not_o here_o oppose_v or_o compare_v to_o the_o false_a light_n but_o the_o evangelist_n here_o go_v about_o to_o put_v a_o difference_n between_o our_o saviour_n christ_n and_o all_o other_o lest_o that_o any_o man_n shall_v think_v that_o he_o be_v even_o the_o same_o light_n &_o no_o better_a than_o the_o which_o angel_n &_o man_n be_v say_v to_o be_v but_o this_o be_v the_o difference_n that_o whatsoever_o be_v bright_a and_o shine_a in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n it_o borrow_v his_o brightness_n from_o another_o but_o christ_n be_v light_a of_o himself_o and_o shine_v by_o himself_o and_o lighten_v with_o his_o brightness_n the_o whole_a world_n insomuche_o that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o cause_n or_o original_a of_o brightness_n but_o he_o he_o call_v therefore_o that_o the_o true_a light_n to_o who_o nature_n it_o be_v proper_a to_o shine_v m._n therefore_o this_o be_v the_o first_o note_n by_o the_o which_o christ_n be_v discern_v from_o john_n and_o from_o all_o other_o apostle_n for_o john_n and_o the_o apostle_n be_v light_a as_o it_o be_v say_v before_o but_o not_o the_o true_a light_n that_o be_v to_o
all_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n in_o the_o dispense_n of_o man_n salvation_n see_v the_o same_o be_v infinite_a the_o israelite_n can_v not_o behold_v the_o glory_n of_o moses_n countenance_n and_o yet_o can_v the_o eye_n of_o the_o apostle_n behold_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god._n they_o see_v sure_o so_o much_o as_o be_v appertain_v to_o the_o dispense_n of_o our_o salvation_n full_o of_o grace_n and_o truth_n b._n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v i_o have_v say_v that_o we_o have_v see_v and_o plain_o behold_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n and_o that_o not_o once_o or_o twice_o only_o because_o he_o be_v full_a of_o all_o grace_n and_o truth_n m._n the_o evangelist_n therefore_o by_o these_o word_n commend_v the_o conversation_n of_o christ_n amongst_o his_o disciple_n because_o of_o two_o thing_n with_o the_o which_o the_o same_o be_v replenish_v name_o with_o grace_n and_o truth_n 7._o act._n 7._o c._n stephen_n also_o be_v say_v to_o be_v full_a of_o grace_n but_o in_o another_o sense_n for_o the_o fullness_n of_o grace_n be_v in_o christ_n he_o be_v the_o well_o from_o whence_o all_o we_o must_v draw_v as_o more_o large_o hereafter_o shall_v be_v declare_v john_n therefore_o mean_v that_o christ_n be_v hereby_o know_v to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n because_o he_o have_v in_o himself_o the_o fullness_n of_o all_o thing_n which_o pertain_v to_o the_o spiritual_a kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o because_o he_o truelye_o show_v himself_o in_o all_o thing_n to_o be_v the_o redeemer_n and_o messiah_n which_o be_v in_o deed_n the_o special_a note_n by_o which_o he_o shall_v be_v discern_v from_o all_o other_o b._n this_o fullness_n of_o grace_n in_o christ_n be_v at_o sundry_a time_n foreshow_v by_o the_o prophet_n as_o in_o the_o psalm_n and_o in_o esai_n 14_o psal_n 49_o psal_n 89_o esay_n 16_o ihon._n 14_o and_o in_o other_o place_n truth_n in_o this_o place_n may_v signify_v sinceritye_n and_o integrity_n with_o the_o which_o christ_n be_v always_o replenish_v r._n i_o be_o the_o way_n say_v he_o the_o truth_n and_o the_o life_n 15._o john_n bear_v witness_n of_o he_o and_z crieth_z say_v this_o be_v he_o of_o who_o i_o speak_v he_o that_o come_v after_o i_o be_v prefer_v before_o i_o for_o he_o be_v before_o i_o john_n bear_v witness_n of_o he_o m._n because_o he_o have_v say_v before_o that_o john_n be_v send_v to_o this_o end_n that_o he_o may_v testify_v of_o christ_n the_o true_a light_n which_o lighten_v everye_o man_n come_v into_o this_o world_n and_o by_o his_o testimony_n have_v bring_v most_o man_n to_o believe_v the_o same_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o he_o shall_v add_v these_o testimony_n and_o shall_v teach_v that_o they_o both_o testify_v one_o thing_n concern_v christ_n and_o he_o bring_v five_o of_o his_o testimony_n by_o the_o which_o he_o manifest_v christ_n of_o the_o which_o we_o will_v speak_v in_o order_n as_o we_o come_v unto_o they_o john_n say_v he_o bear_v witness_n of_o he_o namely_o of_o the_o word_n incarnate_a and_o of_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n c._n for_o by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o present_a tense_n the_o evangelist_n mean_v the_o continual_a act_n and_o true_o this_o doctrine_n ought_v to_o flourish_v for_o ever_o even_o as_o if_o the_o voice_n of_o john_n do_v continual_o sound_v in_o the_o ear_n of_o man_n so_o also_o he_o say_v that_o john_n cry_v to_o declare_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o john_n be_v not_o obscure_a and_o that_o he_o do_v secret_o tell_v the_o same_o in_o the_o ear_n of_o a_o few_o but_o that_o he_o open_o with_o a_o loud_a voice_n preach_v christ_n r._n this_o therefore_o so_o excellent_a a_o man_n who_o the_o whole_a multitude_n reverence_v as_o a_o prophet_n who_o for_o his_o holiness_n and_o pureness_n of_o life_n be_v take_v for_o christ_n this_o so_o singular_a a_o man_n i_o say_v bear_v testimony_n to_o christ_n of_o this_o fullness_n whereby_o the_o wicked_a obstinacye_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v note_v that_o have_v so_o notable_a a_o personne_fw-fr to_o bear_v witness_n of_o christ_n so_o plainelye_o and_o open_o preach_v of_o he_o yet_o notwithstanding_o abode_n in_o their_o hardness_n of_o heart_n and_o perish_v of_o the_o which_o the_o evangelist_n speak_v before_o say_v he_o come_v into_o his_o own_o and_o his_o own_o receyve_v he_o not_o and_o so_o all_o excuse_n be_v quite_o take_v from_o they_o say_v this_o be_v he_o of_o who_o i_o speak_v m._n this_o be_v the_o testimony_n of_o john_n before_o that_o christ_n come_v to_o he_o that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o receyve_v baptism_n he_o instruct_v all_o man_n throughout_o all_o his_o race_n of_o preach_v of_o christ_n which_o be_v now_o ready_o to_o come_v direct_v they_o from_o himself_o unto_o christ_n baptise_v they_o not_o into_o himself_o but_o into_o he_o and_o teach_v to_o prepare_v the_o way_n unto_o he_o and_o this_o be_v that_o which_o paul_n say_v john_n truelye_o baptise_a with_o the_o baptism_n of_o repentance_n speak_v of_o he_o that_o shall_v come_v after_o he_o that_o they_o may_v believe_v that_o be_v to_o say_v 19_o act_n 19_o of_o christ_n jesus_n and_o he_o point_v he_o out_o with_o the_o finger_n say_v this_o be_v he_o of_o who_o i_o speak_v c._n by_o the_o which_o word_n he_o mean_v that_o this_o be_v his_o purpose_n from_o the_o beginning_n namely_o to_o make_v christ_n know_v and_o that_o this_o be_v the_o end_n of_o his_o sermon_n m._n of_o this_o mind_n and_o disposition_n ought_v every_o minister_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v that_o after_o the_o example_n of_o john_n they_o learn_v not_o to_o preach_v themselves_o but_o christ_n and_o not_o to_o suffer_v any_o to_o depend_v upon_o they_o but_o to_o direct_v and_o send_v they_o unto_o christ_n so_o saint_n paul_n teach_v say_v for_o we_o preach_v not_o ourselves_o 4_o 2_o cor._n 4_o but_o christ_n jesus_n our_o lord_n and_o ourselves_o your_o servant_n for_o christ_n sake_n if_o all_o be_v endue_v with_o this_o mind_n which_o will_v seem_v to_o be_v minister_n of_o christ_n there_o shall_v be_v true_a concord_n and_o unitye_n through_o the_o whole_a church_n neither_o shall_v there_o be_v at_o any_o time_n schism_n in_o the_o same_o c._n moreover_o when_o john_n the_o baptist_n speak_v of_o christ_n say_v he_o which_o come_v after_o i_o although_o he_o be_v elder_a than_o christ_n by_o certain_a month_n yet_o notwithstanding_o here_o he_o speak_v not_o of_o his_o age_n but_o because_o he_o have_v do_v the_o office_n of_o a_o prophet_n a_o certain_a time_n before_o christ_n have_v open_o show_v himself_o therefore_o by_o time_n he_o prefer_v himself_o before_o christ_n therefore_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o public_a revelation_n of_o christ_n christ_n follow_v john_n 16._o and_o of_o his_o fullness_n have_v all_o we_o receyve_v and_o grace_n for_o grace_n and_o of_o his_o fullness_n have_v all_o we_o receyve_v m._n these_o word_n and_o that_o which_o follow_v to_o the_o other_o testimony_n of_o john_n beginning_n at_o the_o nineté_v verse_n be_v refer_v of_o some_o to_o our_o evangelist_n and_o not_o to_o john_n the_o baptist_n although_o it_o make_v no_o great_a matter_n who_o word_n these_o be_v yet_o notwithstanding_o there_o seem_v to_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o they_o shall_v be_v take_v from_o the_o testimony_n of_o john_n the_o baptist_n now_o therefore_o he_o begin_v the_o sermon_n touch_v the_o office_n of_o christ_n because_o he_o contain_v in_o himself_o the_o affluence_n and_o fullness_n of_o all_o good_a thing_n insomuch_o that_o no_o part_n of_o salvation_n be_v to_o be_v seek_v for_o of_o any_o other_o with_o god_n true_o be_v the_o well_o of_o life_n of_o righteousness_n of_o truth_n and_o of_o wisdom_n this_o well_o be_v hide_v and_o shut_v from_o we_o but_o in_o christ_n the_o fullness_n of_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v offer_v unto_o us._n for_o he_o be_v ready_o to_o flow_v unto_o we_o of_o his_o own_o accord_n if_o so_o be_v we_o geve_v unto_o he_o passage_n by_o faith_n and_o with_o christ_n be_v the_o fullness_n because_o he_o have_v receive_v the_o spirit_n without_o measure_n 13_o john_n 13_o for_o the_o father_n have_v give_v all_o thing_n into_o his_o hand_n the_o which_o thing_n be_v shadow_v in_o the_o law_n by_o aron_n who_o when_o he_o be_v consecrate_v priest_n have_v oil_n pour_v on_o his_o head_n the_o which_o for_o the_o great_a plenty_n thereof_o run_v down_o by_o his_o beard_n even_o to_o the_o skyrte_n of_o his_o clothing_n 133._o psal_n 133._o as_o therefore_o the_o ointment_n upon_o the_o head_n which_o run_v down_o the_o beard_n even_o aaron_n beard_n even_o so_o christ_n be_v anoint_v
without_o measure_n most_o abundant_o with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o have_v pour_v the_o same_o upon_o the_o beard_n and_o skirt_n of_o his_o clothing_n that_o be_v to_o say_v upon_o the_o faithful_a and_o as_o in_o the_o first_o nativitye_n we_o all_o receyve_v of_o the_o fullness_n of_o adam_n even_o so_o in_o the_o new_a birth_n we_o all_o be_v overwhelm_v with_o the_o fullness_n of_o christ_n for_o adam_n be_v a_o type_n of_o christ_n as_o saint_n paul_n show_v in_o the_o five_o chapter_n to_o the_o roman_n c._n but_o to_o return_v to_o the_o word_n of_o john_n the_o baptist_n first_o of_o all_o he_o show_v that_o we_o be_v void_a every_o one_o of_o we_o of_o all_o spiritual_a goodness_n for_o christ_n abound_v to_o this_o end_n that_o he_o may_v supply_v and_o help_v our_o lack_n ease_v our_o need_n and_o satisfy_v our_o hunger_n m._n the_o which_o saint_n paul_n confirm_v by_o these_o word_n what_o have_v thou_o o_o man_n 4_o 1._o cor._n 4_o which_o thou_o have_v not_o receyve_v c._o secondlye_o he_o admonish_v that_o so_o soon_o as_o we_o depart_v from_o christ_n we_o do_v in_o vain_a seek_v for_o any_o benefit_n be_v it_o never_o so_o small_a because_o god_n will_v have_v all_o goodness_n to_o rest_v in_o he_o alone_o therefore_o we_o shall_v find_v angel_n and_o man_n dry_a heaven_n void_a the_o earth_n barren_a to_o be_v short_a all_o thing_n nothing_o if_o we_o will_v be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n otherwise_o than_o by_o christ_n three_o he_o teach_v that_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o fear_v lest_o we_o shall_v want_v any_o good_a thing_n if_o so_o be_v we_o draw_v at_o the_o fullness_n of_o christ_n the_o which_o be_v so_o fill_v with_o all_o heavenlye_a treasure_n that_o we_o shall_v feel_v the_o same_o to_o be_v in_o very_a deed_n a_o bottomless_a well_o and_o john_n make_v himself_o one_o of_o the_o rest_n that_o want_v perfection_n not_o for_o modesty_n sake_n but_o that_o it_o may_v evidentlye_o appear_v that_o none_o at_o all_o aught_o to_o be_v except_v m._n let_v we_o hear_v therefore_o both_o the_o voice_n of_o god_n and_o also_o the_o voice_n of_o his_o saint_n the_o voice_n of_o god_n be_v 55_o math._n 1●_n esay_n 55_o come_v unto_o i_o i_o will_v refresh_v you_o hear_v i_o and_o your_o soul_n shall_v live_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v we_o have_v nothing_o of_o ourselves_o those_o thing_n which_o we_o have_v come_v from_o another_o crave_v of_o he_o of_o who_o fullness_n we_o all_o have_v receyve_v by_o this_o place_n also_o they_o be_v to_o be_v admonish_v &_o teach_v which_o have_v so_o receive_v of_o this_o fullness_n of_o christ_n that_o they_o possess_v more_o than_o other_o either_o in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n either_o in_o temporal_a blessing_n that_o they_o invert_v not_o nor_o abuse_v the_o nature_n of_o christ_n benefit_n for_o as_o they_o come_v unto_o we_o of_o his_o free_a liberalitye_n and_o goodness_n so_o they_o must_v be_v communicate_v and_o give_v by_o we_o to_o other_o liberal_o that_o the_o need_n of_o other_o may_v be_v supply_v and_o holpen_v by_o our_o fullness_n he_o do_v injury_n to_o the_o benefit_n of_o christ_n receyve_v which_o either_o gréedelye_o keep_v they_o to_o himself_o or_o which_o by_o filthy_a riot_n vainelye_o waste_v they_o of_o this_o matter_n saint_n paul_n admonish_v we_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n 8_o 2._o cor._n 8_o and_o grace_n for_o grace_n m._n this_o place_n be_v diverslye_o expound_v some_o understande_v the_o first_o grace_n to_o be_v that_o by_o the_o which_o through_o faith_n we_o receyve_v remission_n of_o our_o sin_n the_o other_o grace_n to_o be_v life_n everlasting_a the_o which_o kind_n of_o grace_n be_v give_v to_o the_o faithful_a according_a to_o this_o say_n of_o the_o apostle_n but_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n be_v eternal_a life_n 6_o rom._n 6_o but_o other_o some_o will_v have_v the_o first_o to_o be_v that_o which_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v give_v to_o the_o jew_n the_o other_o to_o be_v more_o copious_a and_o large_a and_o give_v to_o all_o man_n c._n but_o the_o simple_a sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o the_o text_n seem_v to_o be_v this_o that_o whatsoever_o grace_n god_n do_v power_n upon_o we_o they_o do_v also_o spring_v from_o this_o well_o for_o whatsoever_o we_o receyve_v of_o christ_n he_o do_v not_o only_o geve_v it_o unto_o we_o as_o god_n but_o also_o the_o father_n have_v so_o give_v all_o thing_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o christ_n that_o whatsoever_o we_o receyve_v from_o god_n they_o come_v to_o we_o by_o christ_n as_o by_o a_o conduit_n pipe_n they_o judge_v therefore_o right_o which_o say_v that_o we_o be_v water_v by_o the_o grace_n pour_v upon_o christ_n this_o be_v the_o ointment_n with_o the_o which_o he_o be_v anoint_v that_o he_o may_v anoint_v we_o all_o with_o he_o whereupon_o he_o be_v call_v christ_n that_o be_v to_o say_v anoint_a and_o we_o christian_n that_o be_v to_o say_v anoint_v of_o he_o r._n therefore_o we_o have_v receyve_v grace_n that_o be_v to_o say_v god_n the_o father_n favour_v we_o for_o grace_n that_o be_v to_o say_v because_o he_o favour_v christ_n his_o son_n who_o brethren_n we_o be_v and_o in_o who_o we_o believe_v for_o this_o say_v he_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n 3_o math._n 3_o in_o who_o i_o be_o well_o please_v wherefore_o the_o father_n also_o love_v we_o which_o by_o faith_n be_v make_v member_n of_o his_o son_n m._n first_o of_o all_o therefore_o we_o have_v here_o to_o learn_v that_o we_o receyve_v not_o grace_n for_o our_o own_o merit_n sake_n but_o for_o the_o worthiness_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o sake_n secondlye_o let_v we_o be_v admonish_v by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o israelite_n not_o to_o neglect_v the_o benefit_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n a._n that_o be_v as_o the_o apostle_n say_v that_o we_o receive_v not_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o vain_a 6_o 2._o cor._n 6_o thirdlye_o that_o we_o know_v how_o that_o we_o receyve_v the_o blessing_n of_o god_n in_o this_o life_n fréelye_o by_o christ_n be_v confirm_v in_o the_o faith_n and_o hope_n of_o the_o blessing_n to_o come_v 2_o esay_n 64_o 2._o cor._n 2_o the_o glory_n and_o greatness_n whereof_o the_o ear_n have_v not_o hear_v the_o eye_n have_v not_o see_v neither_o have_v it_o at_o any_o time_n enter_v into_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n for_o it_o can_v not_o be_v that_o he_o which_o be_v touch_v with_o no_o feel_v of_o the_o benefit_n of_o god_n receyve_v in_o this_o life_n shall_v conceive_v in_o his_o mind_n a_o certain_a hope_n of_o the_o blessing_n to_o come_v 17_o for_o the_o law_n be_v give_v by_o moses_n but_o grace_n and_o truth_n come_v by_o jesus_n christ_n b._n in_o that_o he_o make_v mention_n of_o moses_n by_o collation_n it_o be_v do_v by_o a_o figure_n call_v occupatio_fw-la for_o the_o jew_n always_o boast_v of_o moses_n although_o in_o deed_n they_o beléeve_v he_o not_o john_n therefore_o attribute_v to_o moses_n that_o which_o be_v right_a name_o that_o the_o law_n be_v give_v by_o he_o for_o he_o stand_v between_o god_n and_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n that_o he_o may_v show_v they_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n for_o by_o this_o law_n christ_n set_v apart_o they_o be_v so_o far_o from_o find_v favour_n in_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o lord_n that_o they_o be_v altogether_o guiltye_n of_o impiety_n and_o execrable_a for_o the_o law_n accurse_v so_o many_o as_o observe_v not_o all_o those_o thing_n which_o it_o command_v hereupon_o it_o be_v that_o paul_n call_v the_o law_n the_o administration_n of_o death_n and_o condemnation_n and_o a_o kill_n letter_n 3_o deut._n 27_o gala._n 3_o 2._o cor._n 3_o a._n but_o when_o we_o come_v unto_o christ_n we_o find_v in_o he_o grace_n c._n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o spiritual_a fulfil_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o the_o law_n contain_v in_o the_o letter_n we_o find_v also_o in_o he_o truth_n that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o firm_a and_o sound_o stabillitye_n of_o thing_n the_o evangelist_n therefore_o teach_v how_o much_o inferyoure_n the_o mynisterye_n of_o moses_n be_v to_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n m._n moreover_o these_o two_o grace_n and_o truth_n be_v oftentimes_o in_o the_o scripture_n join_v together_o c._n but_o here_o by_o a_o figure_n call_v hypallage_n they_o be_v both_o apt_o refer_v to_o one_o end_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v that_o grace_n by_o which_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o law_n stand_v be_v at_o the_o length_n offer_v in_o christ_n but_o because_o the_o sense_n will_v remain_v all_o one_o it_o make_v no_o matter_n whether_o they_o be_v join_v or_o separate_v this_o true_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o
evangelist_n will_v have_v this_o grant_v that_o the_o image_n of_o all_o spiritual_a blessing_n be_v shadow_v only_o in_o the_o law_n but_o in_o christ_n perfect_o publish_v and_o reveal_v whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o if_o we_o separate_v the_o law_n from_o christ_n there_o shall_v nothing_o remain_v therein_o bare_a figure_n in_o consideration_n of_o the_o which_o s._n paul_n say_v 2_o colloss_n 2_o that_o in_o the_o law_n be_v shadow_n but_o in_o christ_n the_o body_n m._n and_o moses_n be_v say_v to_o be_v far_o inferior_a unto_o christ_n because_o he_o be_v in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n as_o a_o servant_n for_o a_o testimony_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o shall_v be_v speak_v 3_o heb._n 3_o but_o christ_n be_v as_o lord_n over_o his_o house_n c._n the_o truth_n therefore_o consist_v in_o this_o that_o by_o christ_n we_o obtain_v grace_n which_o the_o law_n can_v not_o bestow_v so_o that_o this_o word_n grace_n be_v take_v as_o well_o for_o the_o free_a remission_n of_o our_o sin_n as_o for_o the_o renovation_n of_o the_o heart_n 18._o no_o man_n have_v see_v god_n at_o any_o time_n the_o only_o beget_v son_n which_o be_v in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o father_n he_o have_v declare_v he_o c._n this_o be_v very_o well_o and_o apt_o add_v for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o former_a sentence_n for_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n be_v the_o gate_n by_o the_o which_o we_o enter_v into_o the_o fruition_n of_o all_o good_a thing_n therefore_o see_v god_n do_v reveal_v himself_o unto_o we_o by_o christ_n only_o it_o follow_v consequentlye_o that_o all_o thing_n be_v seek_v for_o at_o the_o hand_n of_o christ_n m._n these_o thing_n therefore_o do_v so_o agree_v with_o that_o which_o go_v before_o that_o the_o authority_n of_o moses_n upon_o the_o which_o the_o jew_n do_v depend_v because_o he_o talk_v with_o god_n face_n to_o face_n be_v thereby_o make_v inferior_a unto_o christ_n moses_n see_v not_o god_n nor_o any_o other_o man_n whether_o he_o be_v of_o the_o prophet_n or_o of_o the_o patriarch_n c._n furthermore_o when_o john_n say_v that_o no_o man_n have_v see_v god_n at_o any_o time_n his_o word_n be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v only_o of_o the_o external_a sight_n of_o the_o corporal_a eye_n for_o he_o mean_v general_o that_o see_v god_n dwell_v in_o the_o light_n which_o no_o man_n can_v attain_v unto_o he_o can_v be_v know_v but_o in_o christ_n 6_o 1._o timo._n 6_o his_o lively_a and_o express_a image_n wherefore_o our_o condition_n be_v far_o better_a than_o the_o state_n of_o the_o father_n because_o god_n which_o at_o the_o first_o lie_v hide_v in_o his_o secret_a glory_n have_v now_o after_o a_o sort_n make_v himself_o visible_a for_o certain_o when_o christ_n be_v call_v the_o very_a express_a image_n of_o the_o father_n that_o pertain_v to_o a_o special_a benefit_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n even_o so_o the_o evangelist_n in_o this_o place_n show_v we_o a_o new_a and_o strange_a thing_n when_o he_o say_v that_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n which_o be_v in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o father_n and_o before_o that_o time_n hide_v be_v now_o express_v unto_o us._n he_o commend_v therefore_o the_o revelation_n of_o god_n which_o by_o the_o gospel_n be_v bring_v unto_o we_o in_o the_o which_o he_o put_v a_o difference_n between_o we_o and_o the_o father_n and_o do_v prefer_v we_o before_o they_o if_o any_o man_n object_n and_o say_v that_o god_n be_v then_o also_o see_v of_o the_o father_n face_n to_o face_n objection_n as_o we_o read_v that_o the_o patriarcke_n jacob_n do_v 12_o gen._n 32_o deut._n 5_o num._n 12_o god_n speak_v also_o to_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n face_n to_o face_n &_o to_o his_o servant_n moses_n we_o may_v answer_v that_o the_o same_o sight_n be_v in_o no_o point_n to_o be_v compare_v to_o we_o answer_n answer_n for_o god_n use_v at_o that_o time_n obscurelye_o to_o show_v himself_o and_o as_o it_o be_v a_o far_o of_o when_o he_o appear_v more_o glorious_o unto_o some_o they_o say_v that_o they_o have_v see_v he_o face_n to_o face_n therefore_o they_o have_v respect_n unto_o their_o time_n howbeit_o they_o see_v not_o god_n but_o as_o it_o be_v in_o shadow_n and_o mist_n a_o singular_a vision_n be_v that_o &_o almost_o far_a exceed_a all_o the_o rest_n which_o moses_n obtain_v in_o the_o mount_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o the_o almighty_a express_o say_v thou_o can_v not_o see_v my_o face_n 33_o exod._n 33_o only_o thou_o shall_v see_v my_o hinder_a part_n by_o the_o which_o metaphor_n he_o declare_v that_o the_o time_n of_o full_a and_o perfect_a revelation_n be_v not_o yet_o come_v r._n but_o now_o he_o which_o see_v christ_n see_v the_o father_n also_o 14_o john_n 14_o for_o the_o son_n only_o know_v the_o father_n and_o he_o to_o who_o soever_o the_o son_n will_v reveal_v he_o c._n therefore_o this_o be_v most_o certain_a 11_o math._n 11_o that_o god_n which_o be_v at_o the_o first_o invisible_a have_v now_o appear_v in_o christ_n when_o he_o say_v that_o the_o son_n be_v in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o father_n it_o be_v a_o translation_n or_o kind_n of_o speech_n borrow_v of_o the_o custom_n of_o man_n who_o be_v say_v to_o admit_v those_o into_o their_o bosom_n to_o who_o they_o commit_v all_o secréete_n matter_n the_o place_n of_o counsel_n be_v the_o breast_n therefore_o he_o teach_v that_o the_o son_n be_v even_o in_o the_o deep_a counsel_n purpose_n and_o secréete_n mind_n of_o the_o father_n to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v know_v that_o we_o have_v as_o it_o be_v the_o open_a and_o reveal_v breast_n of_o god_n in_o the_o gospel_n 2_o colloss_n 2_o 19_o and_o this_o be_v the_o record_n of_o john_n when_o the_o jew_n send_v priest_n and_o levite_n from_o jerusalem_n to_o ask_v he_o what_o be_v thou_o and_o this_o be_v the_o record_n c._n hitherto_o our_o evangelist_n have_v make_v mention_v of_o the_o sermon_n which_o john_n make_v concern_v christ_n and_o now_o he_o come_v to_o a_o more_o famous_a testimony_n give_v to_o the_o messenger_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n to_o carry_v to_o jerusalem_n he_o say_v therefore_o that_o john_n open_o confess_v wherefore_o he_o be_v send_v of_o god._n r._n and_o in_o that_o the_o evangelist_n so_o oftentimes_o make_v mention_v of_o the_o testimony_n of_o john_n the_o baptist_n it_o be_v do_v special_o for_o two_o cause_n first_o to_o cast_v in_o the_o jew_n tooth_n and_o to_o upbraid_v they_o with_o their_o impiety_n which_o take_v john_n the_o baptist_n for_o a_o man_n of_o god_n and_o the_o lord_n anoint_v and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o will_v not_o believe_v he_o concern_v the_o testimony_n which_o he_o bear_v of_o christ_n and_o also_o that_o he_o may_v keep_v the_o godly_a jew_n in_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n be_v nothing_o dismay_v with_o the_o persecution_n of_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n which_o contumeliouslye_o put_v christ_n to_o the_o shameful_a death_n of_o the_o cross_n second_o to_o declare_v the_o constancy_n of_o john_n the_o baptist_n in_o maintain_v his_o former_a testimony_n which_o he_o have_v give_v concern_v the_o messiah_n and_o to_o prove_v that_o he_o be_v not_o a_o reed_n shake_v with_o wind_n m._n whereas_o therefore_o the_o evangelist_n say_v 11_o mat._n 11_o when_o the_o jew_n send_v from_o jerusalem_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o common_a sort_n of_o people_n which_o think_v well_o of_o john_n but_o rather_o of_o those_o which_o bare_a rule_n and_o which_o can_v also_o by_o their_o own_o authority_n command_v the_o priest_n and_o levite_n to_o go_v whither_o they_o will_v have_v they_o the_o evangelist_n john_n make_v mention_v that_o the_o priest_n and_o levite_n be_v send_v from_o jerusalem_n partly_o that_o we_o may_v understande_v by_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o message_n the_o purpose_n of_o the_o sender_n partly_o that_o he_o may_v add_v a_o certain_a weight_n and_o gravity_n to_o the_o testimony_n of_o john_n which_o be_v not_o give_v in_o secréete_n or_o to_o the_o ear_n of_o the_o common_a people_n only_o but_o to_o such_o as_o be_v seriouslye_o send_v from_o the_o elder_n of_o the_o people_n yea_o from_o the_o elder_n of_o that_o famous_a city_n jerusalem_n but_o with_o what_o purpose_n come_v these_o messenger_n to_o john_n surelye_o the_o people_n have_v be_v now_o without_o prophet_n a_o long_a time_n and_o john_n come_v sudden_o forth_o &_o unlooked_v for_o every_o man_n look_v now_o for_o the_o come_n of_o the_o messiah_n as_o we_o may_v see_v in_o the_o story_n of_o the_o woman_n of_o samaria_n i_o know_v say_v she_o that_o the_o messiah_n shall_v come_v which_o be_v christ_n 4_o john_n 4_o when_o he_o therefore_o come_v he_o shall_v show_v we_o all_o
thing_n c._n lest_o therefore_o the_o priest_n shall_v seem_v to_o be_v slothful_a in_o their_o office_n if_o they_o shall_v dissemble_v and_o neglect_v a_o matter_n of_o so_o great_a weight_n they_o demand_v of_o john_n who_o he_o be_v therefore_o in_o the_o beginning_n they_o deal_v not_o crafty_o but_o rather_o be_v move_v with_o the_o desire_n of_o the_o redemption_n they_o covet_v to_o know_v whether_o john_n be_v christ_n yea_o or_o no_o because_o he_o begin_v to_o alter_v the_o accustom_a manner_n in_o the_o church_n how_o be_v it_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o that_o there_o be_v in_o they_o a_o ambitious_a desire_n to_o keep_v their_o right_n but_o yet_o at_o this_o time_n they_o go_v about_o nothing_o less_o than_o to_o geve_v the_o honour_n of_o christ_n unto_o another_o it_o appear_v therefore_o that_o there_o be_v a_o common_a fame_n of_o john_n which_o stir_v up_o the_o mind_n of_o all_o man_n 20._o and_o he_o confess_v and_o deny_v not_o and_o say_v plain_o i_o be_o not_o that_o christ_n r._n he_o confess_v the_o truth_n and_o deny_v not_o he_o do_v not_o retract_v the_o testimony_n which_o be_v give_v before_o unto_o christ_n but_o true_o again_o as_o before_o he_o geve_v testimony_n unto_o he_o 4_o mala._n 4_o c._n he_o confess_v therefore_o plain_o and_o without_o dissimulation_n or_o circumstance_n that_o he_o be_v not_o christ_n m._n i_o will_v to_o god_n that_o they_o which_o take_v upon_o they_o no_o small_a countenance_n in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n will_v follow_v this_o constancy_n of_o mind_n and_o sincerity_n toward_o christ_n 21_o and_o they_o ask_v he_o what_o then_o be_v thou_o elias_n and_o he_o say_v i_o be_o not_o be_v thou_o that_o prophet_n and_o he_o answer_v no._n and_o they_o ask_v he_o what_o then_o c._n why_o do_v they_o name_v elias_n rather_o than_o moses_n m._n the_o very_a time_n do_v declare_v that_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n be_v even_o at_o hand_n before_o who_o elias_n shall_v come_v according_a to_o the_o pprophecy_n of_o malachy_n 4_o malath_n 4_o r._n they_o inquire_v therefore_o after_o elyas_n the_o thesbite_n which_o be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o achab_n the_o king_n for_o although_o they_o have_v red_a in_o the_o prophet_n malachy_n that_o the_o prophet_n elyas_n shall_v be_v send_v before_o the_o great_a and_o fearful_a day_n of_o the_o lord_n come_v the_o which_o be_v the_o come_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o blynd_n of_o the_o unbelieved_a yea_o judgement_n and_o damnation_n to_o they_o yet_o notwithstanding_o as_o they_o be_v a_o carnal_a people_n so_o they_o understand_v carnal_o not_o that_o another_o shall_v be_v send_v in_o the_o spirit_n and_o power_n of_o elias_n the_o thesbite_n but_o even_o the_o very_a same_o elias_n which_o be_v take_v up_o into_o heaven_n in_o the_o fiery_a chariot_n c._n or_o at_o the_o least_o they_o be_v deceyve_v with_o the_o common_a error_n imagine_v that_o the_o soul_n shall_v come_v in_o a_o other_o body_n b._n by_o this_o error_n herode_fw-la be_v deceyve_v 14_o math._n 14_o think_v that_o john_n who_o he_o have_v behead_v be_v now_o alive_a again_o and_o be_v call_v jesus_n by_o this_o error_n also_o part_v of_o the_o common_a people_n think_v the_o lord_n to_o be_v elias_n 16_o math._n 16_o part_n hieremias_n or_o some_o one_o of_o the_o prophet_n when_o as_o john_n therefore_o have_v deny_v himself_o to_o be_v christ_n the_o messenger_n ask_v he_o if_o he_o be_v not_o elias_n the_o thesbite_n and_o he_o say_v i_o be_o not_o a._n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o our_o saviour_n christ_n which_o can_v lie_v affirm_v he_o to_o be_v elias_n but_o john_n mean_v that_o he_o be_v not_o elias_n in_o person_n but_o in_o spirit_n and_o power_n and_o so_o our_o saviour_n christ_n call_v he_o elias_n be_v thou_o that_o prophet_n although_o this_o word_n that_o be_v add_v in_o this_o place_n yet_o notwithstanding_o it_o have_v no_o emphasis_n or_o force_n and_o afterward_o the_o messenger_n declare_v sufficient_o that_o they_o understand_v another_o prophet_n beside_o christ_n for_o they_o say_v if_o thou_o be_v neither_o christ_n nor_o elias_n neither_o a_o prophet_n in_o the_o which_o word_n we_o see_v diverse_a person_n to_o be_v note_v lest_o any_o man_n shall_v restrain_v this_o unto_o christ_n they_o demand_v therefore_o simple_o if_o he_o be_v not_o a_o prophet_n send_v of_o god_n and_o he_o answer_v no._n john_n in_o deny_v this_o thing_n do_v not_o lie_v for_o modesty_n sake_n but_o do_v sincerelye_o even_o from_o his_o heart_n separate_v himself_o from_o the_o number_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o yet_o for_o all_o that_o this_o answer_n be_v not_o contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n which_o call_v he_o a_o prophet_n and_o more_o than_o a_o prophet_n for_o by_o those_o word_n 11_o math._n 11_o he_o do_v nothing_o else_o but_o bring_v a_o certain_a authority_n and_o credit_n to_o his_o doctrine_n and_o do_v also_o extol_v the_o office_n commit_v unto_o he_o 22._o then_o say_v they_o unto_o he_o what_o be_v thou_o that_o we_o may_v give_v a_o answer_n to_o they_o that_o send_v we_o what_o say_v thou_o of_o thyself_o m._n by_o these_o answer_n of_o john_n the_o messenger_n of_o the_o jew_n have_v hitherto_o learn_v nothing_o else_o than_o that_o he_o be_v neither_o christ_n nor_o elias_n nor_o any_o of_o the_o prophet_n for_o this_o only_a they_o demand_v therefore_o they_o object_v their_o aucthorytye_n of_o who_o they_o be_v send_v lest_o they_o shall_v return_v to_o they_o again_o emptye_v and_o uncertain_a of_o their_o answer_n touch_v the_o exposition_n of_o the_o other_o two_o verse_n follow_v read_v the_o three_o of_o matthew_n begin_v at_o the_o three_o verse_n 25._o and_o they_o ask_v he_o and_o say_v unto_o he_o why_o baptize_v thou_o then_o if_o thou_o be_v not_o christ_n nor_o elias_n neither_o a_o prophet_n r._n although_o the_o most_o holy_a and_o best_a learned_a be_v send_v unto_o john_n yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o be_v not_o so_o move_v with_o their_o authority_n that_o he_o will_v depart_v from_o the_o truth_n to_o the_o which_o he_o have_v bear_v witness_n and_o although_o they_o be_v the_o most_o learned_a of_o all_o other_o in_o the_o law_n yet_o notwithstanding_o they_o understand_v not_o the_o answer_n of_o john_n which_o be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n and_o therefore_o like_o blindeman_n they_o go_v forewarde_v wherefore_o say_v they_o baptize_v thou_o that_o be_v to_o say_v see_v thou_o be_v nothing_o but_o a_o vanish_v voice_n see_v thou_o be_v neither_o christ_n nor_o helias_n nor_o a_o prophet_n who_o then_o have_v give_v thou_o authority_n to_o teach_v new_a thing_n and_o to_o innovate_v old_a rite_n and_o custom_n for_o although_o thou_o teach_v the_o truth_n and_o do_v consecrate_v the_o people_n unto_o god_n by_o new_a rite_n yet_o notwithstanding_o because_o thou_o be_v neither_o anoint_v nor_o order_v by_o our_o byshoppe_n thou_o ought_v not_o of_o thy_o own_o rashness_n to_o usurp_v unto_o thyself_o so_o great_a authority_n wherefore_o thou_o shall_v be_v excommunicate_v and_o cast_v out_o of_o the_o synagogue_n except_o thou_o either_o retracte_v that_o which_o thou_o have_v do_v or_o else_o do_v agree_v to_o the_o dignity_n of_o our_o byshoppe_n m._n for_o who_o give_v thou_o this_o power_n to_o bring_v unto_o the_o people_n new_a ceremony_n contrary_a to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o order_n of_o priesthood_n for_o howsoever_o thou_o lead_v a_o austere_a life_n yet_o for_o all_o that_o it_o be_v not_o meet_v for_o thou_o to_o bring_v in_o new_a ceremony_n without_o our_o authority_n as_o though_o our_o law_n be_v not_o pure_a enough_o of_o itself_o c._n in_o appoint_v these_o three_o degree_n name_o if_o thou_o be_v neither_o christ_n nor_o elias_n nor_o that_o prophet_n they_o seem_v to_o reason_n very_o aptelye_o they_o grant_v all_o power_n to_o be_v in_o the_o messiah_n hand_n they_o conceive_v also_o this_o opinion_n that_o at_o the_o come_n of_o elias_n the_o renew_v both_o of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o of_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v begin_v and_o to_o the_o prophet_n they_o grant_v it_o lawful_a to_o discharge_v that_o office_n that_o be_v enjoin_v they_o therefore_o hereupon_o they_o conclude_v that_o it_o be_v a_o new_a invent_a thing_n unlawful_a that_o john_n shall_v take_v upon_o he_o to_o baptise_v without_o the_o outward_a call_n but_o in_o this_o they_o be_v deceyve_v that_o they_o acknowledge_v he_o not_o to_o be_v elias_n of_o who_o malachy_n make_v mention_v although_o he_o deny_v himself_o to_o be_v that_o elias_n of_o who_o they_o dream_v m._n furthermore_o they_o quite_o overpasse_v the_o prophesy_n of_o esai_n when_o as_o they_o may_v have_v gather_v thereby_o what_o the_o cause_n be_v that_o he_o baptise_a name_o
to_o say_v that_o only_o sacrifice_n christ_n jesus_n so_o we_o read_v that_o this_o lamb_n be_v slay_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n 13_o revela_fw-la 13_o c._n saint_n john_n therefore_o go_v about_o to_o show_v that_o there_o remain_v nothing_o now_o for_o sinner_n but_o that_o they_o flee_v unto_o christ_n their_o refuge_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v overthrow_v all_o satisfaction_n offering_n and_o redemption_n of_o man_n be_v nothing_o but_o false_a and_o forge_a collusion_n of_o satan_n our_o enemy_n this_o word_n take_v away_o may_v be_v two_o manner_n of_o way_n expound_v 53._o 1._o peter_n 2_o esay_n 53._o either_o that_o christ_n have_v take_v upon_o himself_o the_o burden_n wherewith_o we_o be_v oppress_v or_o else_o that_o he_o quite_o abolish_v sin_n chr._n furthermore_o in_o that_o he_o say_v take_v in_o the_o present_a tense_n the_o continual_a action_n of_o take_v away_o be_v mean_v for_o the_o offering_n which_o he_o once_o make_v always_o stand_v of_o force_n let_v we_o know_v therefore_o that_o we_o now_o at_o the_o last_o for_o christ_n his_o sake_n be_v reconcile_v unto_o god_n the_o father_n if_o we_o take_v the_o right_a way_n unto_o his_o death_n and_o if_o we_o do_v believe_v that_o he_o be_v the_o only_a sacrifice_n nail_v to_o the_o cross_n which_o take_v away_o our_o sin_n r._n furthermore_o christ_n do_v not_o so_o take_v away_o sin_n that_o it_o may_v be_v lawful_a for_o everye_o man_n licentiouslye_o to_o live_v as_o he_o ly_v as_o the_o carnal_a false_o gather_v but_o that_o we_o shall_v live_v unto_o god_n 6_o rom._n 6_o and_o to_o righteousness_n for_o wheresoever_o sin_n be_v take_v away_o by_o faith_n there_o in_o steed_n thereof_o succede_v the_o spirit_n mortify_v from_o thencefoorth_o the_o dreag_n of_o sin_n touch_v the_o exposition_n of_o the_o next_o verse_n read_v that_o which_o be_v speak_v of_o in_o the_o fifteen_o verse_n go_v before_o 31._o and_o i_o know_v he_o not_o but_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v declare_v to_o israel_n therefore_o be_o i_o come_v baptise_v with_o water_n and_o i_o know_v he_o not_o c._n lest_o man_n shall_v think_v this_o testimony_n to_o be_v give_v either_o for_o favour_n or_o friendship_n he_o prevent_v that_o doubt_n affirm_v that_o he_o have_v no_o other_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n than_o that_o which_o come_v from_o heaven_n to_o he_o m._n although_o therefore_o he_o know_v he_o to_o be_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o israel_n yet_o for_o all_o that_o he_o know_v he_o not_o by_o face_n for_o there_o be_v no_o familiarity_n between_o they_o christ_n have_v lead_v his_o life_n in_o nazareth_n of_o galilee_n be_v there_o with_o the_o carpenter_n joseph_n and_o now_o at_o the_o first_o he_o come_v from_o nazareth_n to_o jordan_n but_o john_n live_v in_o the_o wilderness_n among_o the_o beast_n and_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o wilderness_n lest_o therefore_o by_o a_o wrong_a suspicion_n and_o doubt_n the_o testimony_n shall_v be_v discredit_v which_o be_v give_v to_o christ_n he_o add_v say_v and_o i_o know_v he_o not_o but_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v declare_v to_o israel_n he_o come_v to_o baptise_v for_o this_o principal_a cause_n though_o this_o be_v not_o the_o only_a cause_n he_o come_v truelye_o to_o jordan_n preach_v the_o baptism_n of_o repentance_n that_o by_o this_o occasion_n he_o may_v know_v he_o who_o before_o he_o know_v not_o that_o be_v know_v of_o he_o he_o may_v reveal_v he_o to_o israel_n he_o baptise_a also_o to_o this_o end_n that_o he_o may_v bring_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o israelite_n to_o repentance_n and_o by_o this_o mean_n may_v prepare_v the_o way_n of_o the_o lord_n which_o be_v at_o hand_n notwithstanding_o he_o say_v well_o that_o he_o come_v to_o this_o end_n that_o christ_n may_v be_v make_v manifest_a unto_o israel_n for_o unless_o this_o be_v do_v all_o the_o rest_n profit_v nothing_o this_o thing_n ought_v all_o the_o ministry_n of_o john_n &_o the_o apostle_n to_o do_v moreover_o except_o repentance_n be_v join_v unto_o it_o christ_n be_v declare_v in_o vain_a c._n and_o see_v it_o be_v necessary_a that_o john_n shall_v be_v send_v of_o god_n that_o he_o may_v lawfullye_o baptise_v we_o may_v gather_v hereuppon_o that_o no_o man_n have_v liberty_n of_o himself_o to_o institute_v sacrament_n for_o this_o right_n only_o pertain_v to_o god_n even_o as_o our_o saviour_n christ_n in_o another_o place_n to_o prove_v the_o baptism_n of_o john_n demand_v whether_o it_o be_v from_o heaven_n or_o of_o man_n 21_o math._n 21_o for_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o two_o verse_n follow_v read_v the_o three_o chapter_n of_o matthew_n 34._o and_o i_o see_v and_o bare_a record_n that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n m._n although_o john_n know_v christ_n who_o he_o have_v show_v to_o be_v present_a and_o of_o who_o he_o have_v preach_v before_o this_o time_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n yet_o notwithstanding_o by_o the_o foresay_a heavenlye_a inauguration_n contain_v in_o thirtye_n and_o two_o and_o thirtye_n and_o three_o verse_n he_o know_v this_o jesus_n who_o before_o he_o know_v not_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o he_o know_v this_o not_o by_o the_o vision_n only_o but_o by_o the_o voice_n also_o of_o the_o father_n which_o come_v from_o heaven_n say_v this_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n 3._o math._n 3._o c._n so_o that_o this_o sign_n be_v add_v because_o of_o confirmation_n and_o that_o not_o so_o much_o in_o respect_n of_o john_n as_o for_o all_o our_o sake_n m._n but_o see_v christ_n be_v in_o the_o scripture_n call_v the_o son_n of_o david_n question_v why_o do_v not_o john_n say_v and_o i_o see_v and_o testify_v that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o david_n answer_n answer_n because_o that_o although_o he_o have_v make_v no_o lie_n yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o shall_v not_o sufficient_o have_v set_v forth_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n and_o this_o be_v worthy_a to_o be_v noot_v that_o he_o witness_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n because_o christ_n shall_v be_v the_o gyver_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o because_o the_o honour_n &_o office_n of_o reconcil_v man_n unto_o god_n belong_v to_o no_o other_o beside_o he_o m._n and_o this_o knowledge_n and_o faith_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n as_o it_o spring_v of_o the_o divine_a revelation_n so_o it_o make_v a_o man_n bless_a as_o christ_n plainelye_o declare_v to_o peter_n in_o the_o sixtéenth_fw-mi chapter_n of_o matthew_n 16_o math._n 16_o 35._o the_o next_o day_n after_o john_n stand_v again_o and_o two_o of_o his_o disciple_n b._n by_o little_a and_o little_a the_o evangelist_n pass_v by_o narration_n from_o the_o testimony_n of_o john_n to_o the_o testimony_n which_o his_o own_o deed_n and_o say_n give_v to_o the_o lord_n and_o see_v it_o be_v the_o office_n of_o john_n to_o reveal_v christ_n unto_o israel_n have_v he_o thus_o far_o forth_o make_v mention_n of_o that_o story_n pass_v over_o without_o doubt_n many_o thing_n which_o john_n preach_v concern_v the_o lord_n the_o other_o three_o evangelist_n have_v more_o large_o write_v of_o that_o which_o he_o have_v omit_v with_o the_o which_o the_o godly_a be_v satisfy_v m._n but_o this_o be_v the_o last_o testimony_n of_o john_n concern_v christ_n among_o those_o which_o the_o evangelist_n mean_v to_o repeat_v who_o in_o affirm_v john_n to_o stand_v commend_v his_o diligence_n in_o reveal_v christ_n as_o one_o that_o seek_v all_o occasion_n to_o fulfil_v his_o office_n c._n here_o furthermore_o we_o see_v how_o base_a and_o simple_a the_o begin_n of_o the_o church_n be_v john_n truelye_o prepare_v disciple_n for_o christ_n but_o christ_n now_o begin_v himself_o to_o prepare_v his_o church_n 36._o and_o behold_v jesus_n as_o he_o walk_v by_o and_o say_v behold_v the_o lamb_n of_o god_n m._n from_o whence_o and_o whither_o he_o walk_v the_o evangelist_n show_v not_o but_o it_o be_v likely_a that_o christ_n according_a to_o the_o great_a humility_n of_o his_o mind_n as_o he_o vouchsafe_v to_o receyve_v johns_n baptism_n so_o also_o he_o be_v content_v to_o hear_v his_o sermon_n which_o he_o communicate_v to_o the_o people_n and_o so_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v when_o the_o sermon_n be_v end_v because_o it_o be_v now_o almost_o eventide_v that_o he_o go_v to_o that_o place_n where_o he_o mean_v to_o rest_v all_o night_n but_o it_o appear_v by_o this_o appellation_n of_o christ_n that_o john_n oftentimes_o call_v christ_n the_o lamb_n of_o god_n take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n and_o that_o notwithout_v cause_n for_o it_o be_v the_o office_n of_o a_o good_a teacher_n not_o once_o only_o but_o oftentimes_o to_o inculcate_v those_o thing_n into_o the_o ear_n of_o his_o auditor_n which_o be_v necessary_a for_o they_o to_o
therefore_o seek_v where_o christ_n abide_v where_o god_n dwell_v let_v he_o hear_v the_o word_n and_o follow_v it_o then_o shall_v he_o be_v sure_a to_o find_v christ_n whereupon_o the_o apostle_n peter_n say_v 1_o 2._o pet._n 1_o we_o have_v a_o right_n sure_a word_n of_o prophecy_n where_o unto_o if_o you_o take_v heed_n as_o unto_o a_o light_n that_o shine_v in_o a_o dark_a place_n 119_o psal_n 119_o you_o do_v well_o and_o the_o prophet_n david_n say_v thy_o word_n be_v a_o light_n to_o my_o path_n and_o a_o lantern_n to_o my_o foot_n they_o come_v and_o see_v where_o he_o dwell_v m._n they_o say_v not_o we_o will_v come_v to_o morrow_n it_o be_v now_o evening_n but_o with_o a_o thankful_a mind_n they_o receyve_v the_o gentleness_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o occasion_n also_o offer_v to_o talk_v with_o he_o but_o what_o they_o hear_v of_o christ_n the_o evangelist_n hear_v make_v no_o mention_n notwithstanding_o by_o that_o which_o follow_v somewhat_o appear_v that_o they_o see_v and_o hear_v those_o thing_n whereby_o they_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n for_o hereafter_o it_o be_v say_v that_o andrew_n tell_v his_o brother_n simon_n say_v we_o have_v find_v messiah_n for_o it_o be_v about_o the_o ten_o hour_n c._n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o evening_n be_v at_o hand_n by_o this_o circumstance_n of_o the_o time_n we_o gather_v that_o these_o two_o disciple_n have_v such_o a_o desire_n to_o hear_v and_o know_v christ_n that_o they_o be_v not_o careful_a for_o their_o night_n lodging_n the_o child_n of_o this_o world_n be_v far_o otherwise_o who_o always_o be_v weary_a and_o unmeete_a to_o follow_v christ_n 40._o one_o of_o the_o two_o which_o hear_v john_n speak_v and_o follow_v he_o be_v andrew_n simon_n peter_n brother_n c._n the_o purpose_n of_o the_o evangelist_n unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o chapter_n be_v this_o that_o we_o may_v know_v how_o the_o disciple_n be_v bring_v by_o little_a and_o little_a to_o christ_n here_o he_o speak_v of_o peter_n afterward_o he_o will_v make_v mention_n of_o philip_n and_o nathanael_n 41._o the_o same_o find_v his_o brother_n simon_n first_o and_o say_v unto_o he_o we_o have_v find_v messiah_n which_o be_v by_o interpretation_n anoint_v the_o same_o find_v his_o brother_n b._n in_o that_o andrew_n find_v simon_n peter_n his_o brother_n in_o judea_n either_o by_o chaunse_n or_o look_v for_o it_o be_v a_o argument_n that_o he_o for_o religion_n sake_n go_v to_o john_n the_o baptist_n although_o peradventure_o he_o be_v not_o his_o continual_a disciple_n it_o be_v a_o token_n truelye_o that_o they_o live_v together_o one_o with_o another_o because_o when_o they_o be_v call_v the_o second_o time_n to_o the_o perpetual_a fellowship_n of_o the_o lord_n of_o the_o which_o mathewe_n and_o mark_n make_v mention_v they_o be_v a_o fish_n together_o 1_o math._n 4_o mark_n 1_o m._n touch_v the_o other_o disciple_n of_o john_n whatsoever_o be_v affirm_v this_o be_v certain_a that_o this_o andrew_n be_v the_o first_o after_o john_n in_o this_o that_o he_o go_v about_o to_o make_v christ_n know_v the_o which_o thing_n the_o evangelist_n declare_v in_o say_v not_o simp_o the_o same_o find_v his_o brother_n simon_n but_o the_o same_o find_v his_o brother_n simon_n first_o and_o no_o man_n will_v deny_v but_o that_o this_o be_v speak_v by_o the_o evangelist_n to_o his_o praise_n but_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v where_o he_o find_v he_o we_o have_v find_v messiah_n that_o which_o be_v in_o the_o hebrew_n text_n messiah_n be_v in_o the_o greek_a text_n christos_n and_o in_o the_o latin_a text_n vnctus_fw-la which_o three_o word_n have_v all_o one_o sense_n and_o signify_v anoint_v but_o these_o word_n we_o have_v find_v messiah_n seem_v to_o be_v speak_v with_o great_a emphasis_n or_o force_n and_o do_v note_n that_o simon_n also_o to_o who_o andrew_n tell_v this_o news_n burn_v marueilouslye_o in_o desire_n toward_o christ_n for_o his_o word_n be_v thus_o much_o in_o effect_n rejoice_v brother_n for_o he_o who_o both_o of_o we_o have_v seek_v so_o careful_o we_o have_v find_v even_o the_o saviour_n christ_n 4._o john_n 4._o he_o speak_v not_o doubtfullye_o as_o do_v the_o woman_n of_o samaria_n which_o say_v be_v not_o he_o christ_n but_o as_o one_o ful_o certify_v andrew_n say_v we_o have_v find_v messiah_n 42._o and_o bring_v he_o to_o jesus_n and_o jesus_n behold_v he_o and_o say_v thou_o be_v simon_n the_o son_n of_o jona_n thou_o shall_v be_v call_v cephas_n which_o be_v by_o interpretation_n a_o stone_n and_o bring_v he_o to_o jesus_n e._n by_o these_o word_n we_o see_v what_o be_v the_o force_n of_o faith_n so_o soon_o as_o we_o be_v bear_v a_o new_a in_o christ_n by_o faith_n by_o and_o by_o our_o mind_n show_v itself_o to_o another_o and_o begin_v to_o declare_v how_o great_a goodness_n it_o have_v find_v and_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a that_o faith_n shall_v be_v idle_a for_o it_o will_v confess_v christ_n either_o with_o the_o mouth_n though_o there_o be_v a_o thousand_o death_n set_v before_o our_o eye_n or_o else_o by_o charity_n towards_o our_o neighbour_n by_o which_o it_o be_v know_v who_o be_v a_o disciple_n of_o christ_n c._n andrew_n have_v scarce_o one_o spark_n of_o faith_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o with_o the_o same_o he_o do_v illuminate_v his_o brother_n simon_n woe_n then_o unto_o our_o sluggishness_n if_o we_o be_v more_o ful_o illumine_v do_v not_o endevoure_v ourselves_o to_o make_v other_o partaker_n of_o the_o same_o grace_n yea_o we_o may_v see_v those_o thing_n in_o andrew_n which_o esay_n require_v of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n namely_o that_o every_o man_n lie_v hold_v on_o his_o neighbour_n &_o that_o he_o say_v come_v let_v we_o ascend_v to_o the_o mount_n of_o the_o lord_n 2_o esay_n 2_o and_o he_o shall_v teach_v us._n for_o andrew_n reach_v out_o his_o band_n to_o his_o brother_n but_o to_o this_o end_n that_o he_o may_v be_v a_o disciple_n in_o the_o school_n of_o christ_n m._n so_o be_v they_o wont_a to_o do_v which_o be_v in_o love_n with_o the_o truth_n which_o they_o have_v know_v 25_o math._n 25_o and_o this_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o a_o good_a servant_n to_o use_v the_o talon_n well_o that_o he_o have_v receyve_v for_o the_o behoof_n of_o his_o master_n and_o in_o that_o this_o andrew_n go_v about_o first_o of_o all_o to_o win_v his_o brother_n simon_n to_o the_o lord_n it_o be_v a_o token_n of_o natural_a and_o true_a love_n the_o which_o truelye_o be_v take_v from_o the_o godly_a in_o christ_n for_o it_o be_v the_o husband_n part_n first_o to_o win_v the_o wife_n the_o parent_n their_o child_n the_o brother_n his_o brother_n the_o master_n his_o servant_n and_o the_o magistrate_n to_o win_v their_o subject_n to_o the_o lord_n c._n furthermore_o the_o purpose_n of_o god_n be_v here_o to_o be_v note_v in_o that_o he_o will_v have_v peter_n which_o do_v far_o excel_v the_o other_o to_o be_v bring_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n by_o the_o work_n and_o ministry_n of_o andrew_n to_o the_o end_n none_o of_o we_o although_o we_o excel_v shall_v think_v scorn_n to_o be_v teach_v of_o the_o inferior_a b._n the_o efficacy_n also_o of_o god_n calling_n be_v here_o to_o be_v consider_v for_o so_o soon_o as_o simon_n be_v call_v to_o jesus_n by_o his_o brother_n he_o follow_v so_o as_o many_o as_o be_v choose_v shall_v receyve_v the_o gospel_n be_v call_v of_o god_n and_o draw_v of_o the_o father_n to_o the_o son_n 6_o john_n 6_o a._n for_o all_o that_o my_o father_n geve_v i_o say_v christ_n shall_v come_v unto_o i_o b._n we_o know_v not_o the_o time_n when_o god_n will_v call_v in_o heart_n those_o that_o be_v he_o for_o large_a be_v the_o mercy_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o gospel_n must_v still_o be_v use_v toward_o they_o which_o show_v not_o themselves_o to_o be_v dog_n or_o hog_n thou_o be_v simon_n the_o son_n of_o jona._n r._n whereas_o our_o text_n have_v the_o son_n of_o jona_n nonnus_n read_v it_o the_o son_n of_o john_n and_o not_o of_o jona._n to_o the_o which_o agréee_v this_o place_n simon_n johanna_n 21_o john_n 21_o or_o simon_n the_o son_n of_o john_n love_v thou_o i_o but_o it_o be_v likely_a that_o the_o father_n of_o simon_n be_v call_v in_o ebrue_n jochanan_n or_o in_o the_o chalde_a tongue_n jochanna_n whereupon_o the_o letter_n of_o aspiration_n be_v alter_v out_o of_o his_o place_n and_z s_o put_v to_o the_o end_n come_v johannes_n the_o which_o also_o afterward_o be_v make_v short_a become_v jonas_n and_o jochanan_n or_o jochanna_n do_v signify_v that_o which_o we_o call_v in_o english_a john_n and_o be_v as_o much_o to_o say_v
neither_o let_v any_o be_v curious_a to_o know_v as_o though_o he_o have_v do_v any_o notable_a wonder_n more_o now_o than_o he_o be_v wont_a to_o do_v 24._o but_o jesus_n do_v not_o commit_v himself_o unto_o they_o because_o he_o know_v all_o man_n c._n that_o be_v to_o say_v christ_n do_v not_o take_v they_o for_o his_o own_o disciple_n but_o rather_o make_v account_n of_o they_o as_o light_v and_o vain_a the_o place_n be_v diligent_o to_o be_v note_v how_o that_o not_o all_o which_o profess_v themselves_o to_o be_v the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n be_v think_v to_o be_v such_o in_o his_o sight_n for_o the_o evangelist_n say_v here_o because_o he_o know_v they_o all_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o dangerous_a than_o hypocrisy_n both_o for_o diverse_a ●_z and_o also_o because_o it_o be_v a_o vice_n more_o than_o common_a there_o be_v no_o man_n almost_o which_o like_v not_o of_o himself_o and_o when_o we_o deceive_v ourselves_o with_o vain_a persuasion_n we_o think_v that_o god_n be_v blind_a but_o here_o we_o be_v teach_v how_o much_o his_o judgement_n do_v differ_v from_o we_o for_o he_o be_v a_o searcher_n of_o the_o heart_n and_o reins_n nothing_o be_v secréete_n unto_o he_o man_n may_v be_v deceyve_v with_o external_a show_n but_o god_n can_v not_o be_v mock_v let_v we_o therefore_o be_v sure_a of_o this_o that_o that_o they_o be_v the_o true_a disciple_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v allow_v of_o he_o for_o the_o lord_n know_v who_o be_v he_o 2_o 2._o tim._n 2_o and_o as_o this_o be_v a_o great_a comfort_n to_o the_o child_n of_o god_n that_o they_o be_v know_v of_o he_o so_o also_o it_o ought_v to_o bring_v great_a terror_n to_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o ungodlye_a that_o they_o be_v know_v unto_o he_o which_o shall_v come_v to_o judge_v both_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a 25._o and_o need_v not_o that_o any_o shall_v testify_v of_o man_n for_o he_o know_v what_o be_v in_o man_n c._n whereas_o the_o evangelist_n say_v that_o christ_n know_v all_o it_o be_v to_o be_v refer_v to_o those_o of_o who_o mention_v be_v make_v before_o but_o because_o some_o man_n may_v doubt_v whence_o christ_n have_v this_o knowledge_n the_o evangelist_n cut_v of_o this_o doubt_n or_o question_n answer_v that_o whatsoever_o be_v in_o man_n hide_v from_o our_o eye_n be_v see_v of_o christ_n but_o we_o may_v not_o hereof_o gather_v that_o no_o man_n ought_v to_o be_v trust_v because_o that_o which_o be_v in_o man_n be_v not_o know_v unto_o we_o for_o no_o man_n know_v what_o be_v in_o man_n but_o the_o spirit_n of_o man_n that_o be_v in_o man_n first_o because_o we_o be_v such_o that_o we_o stand_v in_o need_n one_o of_o another_o help_n second_o because_o we_o be_v evil_a and_o ready_a to_o condemn_v but_o lest_o we_o shall_v always_o be_v deceive_v by_o ipocrite_n it_o belong_v to_o christ_n only_o to_o endue_v we_o with_o the_o spirit_n of_o discretion_n whereby_o we_o may_v discern_v they_o from_o such_o as_o mean_v simp_o and_o truelye_o the_o which_o gift_n we_o must_v obtain_v at_o his_o hand_n by_o prayer_n ❧_o the_o third_o chapter_n 1._o there_o be_v a_o man_n of_o the_o pharisee_n name_v nicodemus_n a_o ruler_n of_o the_o jew_n there_o be_v a_o man_n c._n the_o pvrpose_n of_o the_o evangelist_n s_o john_n in_o this_o chapter_n be_v to_o set_v forth_o certain_a of_o the_o word_n and_o deed_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n christ_n that_o by_o they_o he_o may_v be_v know_v to_o be_v the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n the_o eternal_a power_n of_o god_n yea_o and_o god_n himself_o see_v therefore_o in_o the_o chapter_n go_v before_o he_o make_v mention_v of_o two_o of_o his_o notable_a and_o wonderful_a deed_n by_o which_o his_o divinitye_n may_v plainelye_o appear_v he_o think_v it_o now_o meet_a to_o adjoine_v thereunto_o the_o communication_n which_o he_o have_v with_o nicodemus_n the_o pharisee_fw-mi and_o a_o chief_a ruler_n among_o the_o jew_n in_o the_o which_o he_o plainelye_o express_v by_o his_o own_o word_n both_o what_o he_o cause_n to_o ●oe_v that_o we_o may_v be_v citizen_n of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o also_o what_o he_o require_v of_o us._n it_o seem_v that_o the_o evangelist_n enter_v into_o the_o narration_n of_o this_o history_n with_o the_o same_o purpose_n and_o intent_n that_o he_o do_v enter_v into_o the_o narration_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v set_v at_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o the_o chapter_n go_v before_o namely_o to_o show_v that_o their_o obstinacye_n be_v inexcusable_a which_o desire_v of_o christ_n that_o a_o sign_n may_v be_v give_v unto_o they_o because_o he_o have_v show_v so_o many_o notable_a miracle_n that_o the_o pharisées_fw-fr themselves_o also_o be_v constrain_v to_o acknowledge_v his_o divine_a operation_n the_o evangelist_n also_o set_v before_o our_o eye_n in_o the_o person_n of_o nicodemus_n how_o frivolous_a and_o vain_a their_o faith_n be_v which_o be_v move_v by_o miracle_n sudden_o become_v disciple_n of_o christ_n for_o this_o man_n see_v he_o be_v a_o pharisee_n and_o one_o of_o the_o chief_a ruler_n of_o the_o people_n in_o his_o country_n aught_o for_o to_o have_v excel_v other_o for_o among_o the_o common_a sort_n of_o people_n lightness_n reign_v much_o of_o the_o pharisee_n m._n there_o be_v no_o sect_n that_o more_o envy_v christ_n than_o the_o sect_n of_o the_o pharisées_fw-fr for_o they_o be_v puff_v up_o with_o a_o opinion_n of_o holiness_n and_o with_o their_o authority_n by_o which_o they_o excel_v other_o of_o the_o jew_n but_o christ_n uncover_v the_o hypocrisy_n of_o these_o man_n and_o therefore_o they_o do_v hate_v he_o to_o the_o death_n a._n but_o touch_v that_o which_o partayn_v to_o their_o sect_n and_o original_n read_v our_o exposition_n upon_o the_o three_o chapter_n of_o matthew_n c._n this_o be_v great_a honour_n to_o nicodemus_n that_o he_o be_v a_o pharisée_fw-fr and_o a_o ruler_n of_o the_o jew_n but_o the_o evangelist_n do_v not_o give_v he_o this_o title_n for_o honour_n sake_n but_o rather_o note_v that_o the_o same_o be_v a_o obstacle_n and_o let_v unto_o he_o from_o come_v with_o a_o free_a and_o quiet_a mind_n unto_o christ_n whereby_o we_o be_v admonish_v that_o they_o which_o excel_v in_o the_o world_n be_v very_o much_o wrap_v with_o troublesome_a snare_n that_o they_o can_v not_o aspire_v unto_o heaven_n but_o the_o evangelist_n do_v not_o only_o make_v mention_v that_o nicodemus_n be_v by_o order_n a_o pharisée_fw-fr but_o also_o one_o of_o the_o chief_a ruler_n of_o the_o people_n that_o be_v to_o say_v one_o of_o the_o seniors_n and_o ecclesiastical_a doctor_n as_o may_v appear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n art_n thou_o a_o master_n in_o israel_n and_o know_v not_o these_o thing_n call_v nicodemus_n m._n the_o evangelist_n put_v down_o his_o name_n to_o bring_v the_o more_o credit_n and_o authority_n to_o the_o history_n 2._o the_o same_o come_v to_o jesus_n by_o night_n and_o say_v unto_o he_o rabbi_n we_o know_v that_o thou_o be_v a_o teacher_n come_v from_o god_n for_o no_o man_n can_v do_v these_o miracle_n that_o thou_o do_v except_o god_n be_v with_o he_o the_o same_o come_v to_o jesus_n by_o night_n b._n here_o come_v two_o thing_n to_o be_v note_v 2_o 1._o timo._n 2_o the_o first_o be_v that_o the_o lord_n god_n have_v those_o that_o be_v he_o among_o all_o sort_n of_o man_n which_o will_v that_o all_o man_n shall_v be_v save_v and_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n the_o second_o be_v that_o the_o elect_n can_v not_o but_o at_o the_o length_n they_o must_v come_v unto_o the_o lord_n according_a to_o the_o say_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n 6_o john_n 6_o all_o that_o my_o father_n geve_v i_o shall_v come_v unto_o i_o c._n notwithstanding_o in_o that_o he_o come_v in_o the_o night_n we_o may_v gather_v that_o he_o be_v too_o to_o fearful_a for_o he_o be_v blind_v in_o his_o own_o conceit_n it_o may_v be_v also_o that_o shame_n do_v stay_v he_o because_o such_o man_n as_o be_v ambitious_a think_v that_o they_o have_v for_o ever_o lose_v their_o fame_n if_o they_o descend_v from_o the_o stately_a degree_n of_o a_o master_n to_o the_o order_n of_o a_o scholar_n and_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o this_o man_n be_v puff_v uppe_o with_o a_o foolish_a opinion_n of_o his_o own_o knowledge_n to_o be_v short_a see_v he_o do_v make_v great_a account_n of_o himself_o he_o will_v not_o willing_o lease_v any_o part_n of_o his_o estimation_n and_o yet_o for_o all_o that_o he_o seem_v to_o show_v some_o spark_n of_o godliness_n to_o be_v in_o he_o in_o that_o he_o hear_v a_o prophet_n of_o god_n to_o be_v come_v do_v not_o contemn_v or_o neglect_v the_o
it_o follow_v that_o they_o refuse_v the_o reméedye_n do_v willing_o seek_v their_o own_o damnation_n r._n but_o christ_n speak_v not_o here_o of_o gross_a and_o outward_a sin_n as_o of_o theft_n man_n the_o light_n hate_v of_o wicked_a man_n murder_n adultery_n false_a witness_n force_v luxury_n drunkenness_n and_o such_o like_a which_o also_o be_v condemn_v of_o the_o wise_a man_n of_o this_o world_n but_o of_o the_o most_o excellent_a virtue_n of_o the_o world_n as_o of_o reason_n wisdom_n and_o human_a righteousness_n which_o in_o this_o world_n be_v count_v for_o most_o excellent_a thing_n par._n therefore_o as_o he_o which_o go_v about_o any_o wickedness_n love_v the_o night_n &_o flé_v from_o the_o sun_n lest_o his_o deed_n shall_v be_v manifest_a even_o so_o they_o who_o conscience_n do_v accuse_v they_o hate_v the_o light_n of_o the_o evangelicall_a truth_n by_o which_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v filthy_a be_v bewray_v that_o they_o may_v be_v reform_v in_o christ_n by_o this_o reason_n wicked_a king_n prince_n and_o potentate_n which_o swell_v with_o ambition_n which_o be_v defile_v with_o excess_n and_o filthy_a pleasure_n and_o which_o be_v imbrue_v with_o the_o blood_n of_o innocent_n have_v hate_v the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n because_o it_o condemn_v all_o these_o thing_n in_o like_a manner_n the_o popish_a bishop_n abbotte_n priest_n monk_n and_o nun_n which_o repose_v their_o trust_n in_o mass_n in_o idol_n in_o purgatorye_n in_o wicked_a vow_n in_o indulgence_n and_o such_o like_a do_v hate_n christ_n and_o his_o light_n which_o teach_v that_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v unprofitable_a more_o than_o vatinius_n be_v hate_v of_o the_o roman_n insomuch_o that_o they_o persecute_v the_o preacher_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o hang_v they_o uppe_o because_o they_o preach_v against_o the_o sacred_a canonnes_n against_o the_o dignity_n episcopal_a against_o the_o pope_n holiness_n and_o against_o peter_n key_n that_o be_v to_o say_v because_o they_o discover_v the_o tyranny_n of_o antichrist_n and_o do_v fréelye_o pronounce_v the_o dignity_n and_o authority_n of_o bishop_n to_o be_v forge_v counterfeit_n and_o mere_a false_a c._n therefore_o we_o be_v much_o deceyve_v if_o we_o think_v that_o they_o be_v lead_v with_o godly_a zeal_n which_o rage_n against_o the_o gospel_n when_o as_o they_o rather_o hate_v and_o abhor_v the_o light_n that_o they_o may_v the_o more_o fréelye_o walk_v in_o darkness_n 21._o but_o he_o that_o do_v truth_n come_v to_o the_o light_n that_o his_o deed_n may_v be_v know_v how_o that_o they_o be_v wrought_v in_o god_n m._n that_o be_v to_o say_v he_o which_o know_v that_o he_o do_v the_o truth_n and_o seek_v the_o same_o be_v a_o hater_n of_o all_o falsehood_n and_o lie_n he_o true_o neither_o hate_v the_o light_n nor_o shun_v the_o same_o but_o love_v it_o for_o to_o do_v the_o truth_n be_v as_o much_o to_o say_v as_o to_o deal_v faithful_o without_o any_o manner_n of_o deceit_n like_o good_a and_o honest_a man_n c._n but_o this_o seem_v to_o be_v speak_v improperlye_o and_o absurd_o except_o a_o man_n will_v confess_v that_o some_o be_v good_a and_o true_a before_o they_o be_v bear_v again_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n the_o which_o be_v clean_o contrary_a to_o the_o whole_a doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n for_o we_o know_v that_o faith_n be_v the_o root_n from_o whence_o do_v come_v all_o good_a work_n but_o christ_n simple_o affirm_v that_o they_o which_o deal_v sincerelye_o and_o uprightlye_o do_v desire_v nothing_o more_o than_o the_o light_n man_n the_o light_n a_o touchstone_n to_o wicked_a man_n that_o their_o work_n may_v be_v approve_v because_o by_o that_o trial_n and_o touchstone_n it_o may_v the_o better_o appear_v that_o they_o have_v walk_v uprightlye_o and_o pure_o before_o god_n from_o all_o deceit_n therefore_o it_o be_v very_o fondlye_a say_v of_o some_o that_o man_n before_o faith_n be_v well_o dispose_v for_o christ_n say_v not_o that_o the_o faithful_a do_v believe_v to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v have_v the_o praise_n of_o good_a work_n but_o he_o only_o show_v what_o the_o unbelieve_a will_v do_v if_o so_o be_v their_o own_o conscience_n do_v not_o accuse_v they_o of_o evil_a r._n therefore_o if_o abbotte_n monk_n priest_n and_o friar_n do_v the_o truth_n they_o will_v also_o come_v to_o the_o light_n and_o will_v suffer_v their_o condition_n to_o be_v try_v but_o hereby_o they_o themselves_o do_v bewray_v their_o own_o deed_n to_o be_v evil_a for_o he_o which_o do_v the_o truth_n that_o be_v he_o who_o cause_n be_v just_a who_o work_n be_v of_o faith_n which_o teach_v the_o truth_n which_o be_v delight_v in_o the_o truth_n which_o hate_v hypocrisy_n and_o lie_n which_o deal_v just_o and_o to_o be_v short_a which_o geve_v all_o glory_n unto_o god_n and_o geve_v place_n to_o the_o preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n he_o can_v abide_v the_o light_n and_o to_o have_v his_o cause_n his_o work_n doctrine_n and_o state_n try_v and_o examine_v whereupon_o christ_n because_o his_o work_n and_o doctrine_n be_v of_o god_n have_v leave_v unto_o all_o man_n free_a leave_n to_o pronounce_v and_o judge_v of_o they_o so_o that_o they_o do_v it_o upright_o 18.20_o john_n 18.20_o inquire_v say_v he_o of_o those_o which_o have_v hear_v i_o what_o i_o say_v unto_o they_o behold_v these_o know_v what_o i_o have_v say_v but_o the_o pharisées_fw-fr and_o their_o successor_n will_v not_o suffer_v any_o man_n to_o judge_v of_o their_o doctrine_n but_o will_v have_v all_o thing_n that_o they_o teach_v and_o decree_v simp_o and_o as_o a_o manifest_a truth_n to_o be_v receyve_v and_o allow_v c._n therefore_o our_o saviour_n christ_n use_v this_o word_n truth_n because_o we_o be_v deceyve_v by_o the_o outward_a show_n of_o work_n do_v not_o way_n and_o consider_v what_o be_v contain_v within_o and_o he_o call_v those_o work_n wrought_v in_o god_n which_o be_v approve_v of_o he_o and_o be_v good_a according_a to_o his_o rule_n hereby_o let_v we_o learn_v not_o to_o judge_v of_o work_n except_o they_o be_v bring_v to_o the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n because_o our_o reason_n be_v utter_o blind_a and_o corrupt_v bu_n and_o see_v christ_n of_o his_o goodness_n have_v call_v we_o to_o the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n let_v we_o understand_v that_o it_o be_v our_o part_n to_o do_v the_o truth_n with_o a_o willing_a mind_n the_o apostle_n exhort_v we_o unto_o the_o same_o 5.8_o ephe_n 5.8_o you_o be_v sometime_o darkness_n but_o now_o be_v you_o light_n in_o the_o lord_n walk_v as_o child_n of_o the_o light_n for_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v in_o all_o goodness_n and_o righteousness_n and_o truth_n approve_v what_o be_v acceptable_a unto_o the_o lord_n and_o have_v no_o fellowship_n with_o the_o unfruitful_a work_n of_o darkness_n but_o rather_o rebuke_v they_o and_o the_o apostle_n john_n this_o be_v the_o tiding_n which_o we_o have_v hard_o of_o he_o and_o declare_v unto_o you_o that_o god_n be_v light_n and_o in_o he_o be_v no_o darkness_n at_o all_o if_o we_o say_v that_o we_o have_v felloweship_n with_o he_o and_o walk_v in_o darkness_n we_o lie_v and_o do_v not_o the_o truth_n but_o if_o we_o walk_v in_o light_n even_o as_o he_o be_v light_a then_o have_v we_o fellowship_n with_o he_o 22._o after_o these_o thing_n come_v jesus_n and_o his_o disciple_n into_o the_o land_n of_o jurye_n and_o there_o he_o tarry_v with_o they_o and_o baptise_a m_o now_o that_o the_o evangelist_n have_v describe_v the_o dialogue_n between_o christ_n and_o nicodemus_n he_o consequentlye_o make_v a_o way_n to_o bring_v in_o the_o testimony_n of_o john_n the_o baptist_n which_o most_o excellent_o he_o give_v unto_o christ_n before_o he_o be_v shut_v up_o into_o prison_n for_o the_o evangelist_n special_o travail_v to_o credit_n and_o confirm_v the_o divinitye_n and_o authority_n of_o christ_n with_o most_o firm_a testimony_n give_v from_o heaven_n bu_n therefore_o when_o the_o lord_n have_v observe_v the_o feast_n of_o passeover_n at_o jerusalem_n and_o have_v discharge_v his_o office_n according_a to_o the_o oportunytye_n of_o the_o time_n preach_v the_o gospel_n of_o the_o kingdom_n c._n he_o come_v into_o that_o part_n of_o galilee_n which_o be_v near_o to_o the_o town_n of_o aenon_n which_o be_v situate_a in_o the_o tribe_n of_o manasse_n b._n that_o there_o also_o he_o may_v exhibit_v and_o declare_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o saviour_n for_o abide_v there_o and_o minister_a baptism_n by_o his_o disciple_n he_o bring_v many_o citizen_n to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n the_o lord_n jesus_n abide_v not_o long_o at_o jerusalem_n for_o his_o hour_n be_v not_o yet_o come_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v gloryfy_v but_o toward_o his_o end_n he_o execute_v his_o office_n more_o diligent_o
there_o and_o show_v many_o sign_n because_o the_o time_n of_o his_o gloryfication_n draw_v near_o m._n but_o because_o the_o time_n be_v come_v to_o gather_v together_o the_o church_n of_o the_o faithful_a church_n two_o thing_n deliver_v to_o the_o church_n christ_n begin_v to_o order_n and_o appoint_v a_o church_n bu_n and_o there_o be_v two_o thing_n special_o which_o he_o deliver_v to_o the_o church_n with_o the_o which_o he_o exercise_v the_o same_o namely_o the_o preach_a of_o the_o truth_n and_o holy_a baptism_n c._n for_o although_o christ_n baptise_a by_o his_o disciple_n yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o be_v here_o name_v as_o the_o author_n of_o baptism_n the_o minister_n be_v leave_v out_o which_o do_v nothing_o but_o in_o his_o name_n and_o at_o his_o commandment_n r._n to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v know_v that_o it_o make_v no_o matter_n what_o manner_n of_o person_n the_o minister_n be_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n aug._n for_o when_o the_o integrity_n and_o pureness_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v handle_v it_o make_v no_o matter_n what_o faith_n he_o be_v of_o which_o geve_v the_o sacrament_n it_o make_v much_o touch_v the_o way_n of_o his_o own_o salvation_n but_o as_o touch_v the_o question_n of_o the_o sacrament_n it_o make_v no_o matter_n at_o all_o r._n for_o the_o sacrament_n have_v his_o integrity_n from_o the_o word_n or_o from_o the_o preach_v annex_v to_o the_o sacrament_n but_o the_o word_n have_v his_o authority_n from_o god_n 23._o and_o john_n also_o baptise_a in_o aenon_n beside_o salim_n because_o there_o be_v much_o water_n there_o and_o they_o come_v and_o be_v baptise_a m._n christ_n now_o teach_v and_o baptise_v john_n as_o it_o may_v seem_v may_v lawfullye_o have_v forsake_v his_o office_n give_v himself_o to_o rest_n and_o have_v follow_v security_n 1.29_o john_n 1.29_o a._n special_o new_a that_o he_o have_v testify_v of_o he_o already_o that_o he_o be_v the_o true_a lamb_n of_o god_n which_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n m._n but_o because_o he_o be_v send_v by_o god_n to_o teach_v and_o to_o baptise_v he_o do_v not_o at_o his_o own_o will_n and_o pleasure_n lie_v aside_o the_o office_n commit_v unto_o to_o he_o but_o look_v and_o wait_v for_o the_o time_n appoint_v of_o god._n 23.21_o we_o may_v not_o forsake_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n at_o out_o own_o pleasure_n which_o be_v call_v to_o be_v preacher_n jere._n 23.21_o by_o this_o example_n we_o be_v teach_v not_o to_o cease_v from_o execute_v our_o office_n and_o duty_n so_o long_o as_o the_o administration_n thereof_o be_v permit_v for_o as_o he_o offend_v which_o run_v before_o he_o be_v call_v a._n as_o the_o lord_n complain_v by_o the_o prophet_n jeremye_n even_o so_o verylye_o he_o offend_v no_o less_o which_o at_o his_o own_o pleasure_n take_v and_o forsake_v the_o office_n which_o god_n have_v commit_v to_o he_o c._n the_o geographer_n affirm_v that_o these_o two_o town_n aenon_n and_o salim_n be_v not_o far_o from_o the_o river_n of_o jordane_n and_o jaboc_n near_o unto_o the_o which_o two_o town_n they_o make_v a_o city_n call_v scythopolis_n hierome_n say_v it_o make_v no_o matter_n whether_o you_o read_v salem_n or_o salim_n c._n the_o cause_n why_o john_n baptise_a in_o aenon_n be_v add_v for_o that_o there_o be_v much_o water_n there_o b._n judea_n want_v the_o same_o very_a much_o god_n water_n of_o baptism_n sanctify_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o the_o river_n of_o jordane_n do_v overflowe_v and_o yet_o we_o read_v not_o that_o it_o be_v consecrate_v with_o any_o cross_n character_n or_o seremony_n for_o the_o pure_a water_n of_o baptism_n be_v sanctify_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o by_o the_o godly_a use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n we_o read_v the_o like_a hereof_o where_o it_o be_v say_v and_o as_o they_o go_v on_o their_o way_n 8.36_o act_n 8.36_o they_o come_v to_o a_o certain_a water_n and_o the_o eunuch_n say_v see_v here_o be_v water_n what_o let_v i_o to_o be_v baptise_a not_o that_o we_o may_v at_o this_o day_n leave_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n and_o baptise_v in_o everye_o ryver_n lake_n or_o spring_n for_o the_o apostle_n will_v all_o thing_n to_o be_v do_v decentlye_o and_o in_o order_n 14.40_o 1._o cor._n 14.40_o c._n by_o these_o word_n of_o christ_n we_o may_v also_o gather_v that_o both_o john_n and_o christ_n celebrate_a baptism_n by_o duck_v the_o whole_a body_n in_o the_o water_n how_o be_v it_o let_v we_o not_o be_v too_o curious_a in_o the_o external_a rite_n so_o it_o be_v agree_v with_o the_o spiritual_a truth_n and_o with_o the_o institution_n and_o rule_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n 24._o for_o john_n be_v not_o yet_o cast_v into_o prison_n m._n therefore_o the_o prison_n be_v the_o end_n which_o god_n have_v appoint_v for_o john_n to_o finish_v his_o office_n of_o preach_v and_o baptise_v even_o as_o the_o cross_n be_v to_o our_o saviour_n christ_n 13.5_o deut._n 13.5_o and_o yet_o truelye_o prison_n and_o cross_n belong_v not_o to_o true_a but_o to_o false_a teacher_n but_o this_o be_v the_o lot_n of_o the_o godly_a and_o of_o all_o true_a teacher_n in_o this_o most_o wicked_a world_n concern_v the_o imprisonment_n of_o john_n the_o baptist_n and_o his_o death_n read_v more_o in_o our_o exposition_n of_o matthew_n begin_v at_o the_o third_o verse_n 25._o and_o there_o arise_v a_o question_n between_o johns_n disciple_n and_o the_o jew_n about_o purify_n and_o there_o arise_v a_o question_n between_o johns_n disciple_n bu_n now_o the_o evangelist_n come_v near_a to_o the_o matter_n itself_o of_o the_o which_o he_o intend_v to_o entreat_v c._n and_o first_o of_o all_o he_o recite_v a_o controversye_n which_o arise_v by_o the_o disciple_n of_o john_n about_o purify_n and_o not_o in_o vain_a for_o the_o less_o that_o they_o be_v instruct_v in_o doctrine_n the_o more_o bold_o they_o put_v forth_o themselves_o to_o disputation_n according_a to_o the_o proverb_n who_o so_o bold_o as_o blind_a bayarde_n if_o other_o have_v begin_v the_o contention_n with_o they_o they_o may_v have_v be_v excuse_v but_o whereas_o they_o be_v unable_a to_o encounter_v with_o the_o jew_n and_o yet_o do_v wyllinglye_o provooke_v they_o thereunto_o and_o that_o rashelye_o without_o cause_n they_o be_v much_o to_o blame_v for_o the_o word_n of_o the_o text_n import_v that_o the_o question_n be_v move_v by_o they_o and_o beside_o that_o they_o deserve_v blame_v for_o their_o rash_a contention_n about_o a_o unknown_a thing_n which_o exceed_v the_o reach_n of_o their_o knowledge_n they_o be_v also_o to_o be_v reprehend_v for_o another_o fault_n no_o less_o than_o this_o name_o for_o that_o they_o be_v not_o so_o ready_a to_o defend_v and_o maintain_v the_o lawful_a use_n of_o baptism_n as_o they_o be_v to_o defend_v their_o master_n cause_n that_o he_o may_v have_v his_o authority_n still_o par._n for_o there_o come_v many_o unto_o john_n jew_n contention_n between_o the_o disciple_n of_o john_n and_o the_o jew_n and_o be_v baptise_a of_o he_o many_o also_o come_v to_o jesus_n and_o be_v baptise_a of_o his_o disciple_n and_o hereupon_o arise_v envy_n in_o certain_a of_o the_o disciple_n of_o john_n against_o jesus_n that_o he_o be_v of_o late_a baptise_a of_o john_n and_o behave_v himself_o as_o his_o disciple_n and_o be_v commend_v by_o his_o testimony_n unto_o the_o people_n will_v now_o sudden_o make_v himself_o equal_a with_o he_o &_o will_v also_o prefer_v himself_o before_o he_o who_o disciple_n take_v upon_o they_o the_o administration_n of_o that_o which_o john_n alone_o have_v hitherto_o use_v c._n therefore_o both_o these_o fault_n be_v worthy_a of_o reprehension_n because_o they_o not_o weigh_v the_o consideration_n of_o baptism_n make_v but_o a_o trifle_n of_o god_n holy_a institution_n and_o because_o through_o wicked_a ambition_n they_o take_v their_o master_n part_n against_o christ_n about_o purify_n c._n the_o question_n be_v about_o purify_n because_o the_o jew_n have_v diverse_a and_o sundry_a precept_n concern_v baptism_n from_o the_o law_n and_o be_v not_o content_a with_o those_o legal_a rule_n they_o use_v many_o other_o thing_n which_o they_o have_v receyve_v from_o their_o elder_n a._n as_o you_o may_v more_o plain_o perceive_v if_o you_o read_v the_o fiftéenth_n of_o matthew_n and_o the_o seven_o of_o mark_n c._n therefore_o because_o a_o new_a rite_n also_o and_o order_v of_o purify_n be_v bring_v in_o by_o christ_n and_o by_o john_n the_o baptist_n they_o have_v already_o so_o great_a plenty_n and_o variety_n they_o think_v it_o very_o absurd_a and_o without_o reason_n m._n wherefore_o in_o the_o disciple_n of_o john_n we_o see_v a_o carnal_a disposition_n c._n who_o
be_v whole_o occupy_v in_o the_o personne_n of_o man_n have_v little_a regard_n to_o the_o veritye_n of_o doctrine_n r._n for_o this_o contention_n be_v plain_a carnal_a and_o proceed_v from_o ambition_n as_o also_o the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n accuse_v a_o certain_a man_n which_o cast_v out_o deville_n in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n and_o yet_o follow_v not_o they_o for_o that_o they_o think_v that_o authority_n to_o work_v miracle_n 22.24_o mar._n 9.38_o mat._n 18.1_o luk._n 22.24_o be_v give_v whole_o unto_o they_o furthermore_o they_o contend_v too_o carnallye_o about_o the_o supremacye_n m._n and_o it_o be_v not_o only_o in_o this_o place_n speak_v of_o the_o disciple_n of_o john_n 9.14_o mat._n 9.14_o that_o they_o labour_v for_o their_o master_n against_o christ_n by_o the_o spirit_n of_o emulation_n for_o we_o have_v the_o like_a in_o the_o nine_o of_o mathewe_n but_o notwithstanding_o all_o this_o there_o be_v no_o contention_n between_o christ_n and_o john_n neither_o do_v john_n seek_v any_o other_o thing_n but_o that_o he_o may_v decrease_v as_o christ_n increase_v bu_n therefore_o by_o this_o example_n we_o see_v how_o much_o we_o may_v hurt_v the_o peace_n and_o tranquillity_n of_o the_o church_n minister_n the_o unitye_n of_o the_o church_n rend_v by_o lean_v to_o much_o to_o god_n minister_n if_o we_o attribute_v to_o much_o to_o god_n minister_n for_o so_o both_o the_o glory_n which_o belong_v unto_o christ_n the_o creator_n be_v give_v to_o creature_n and_o also_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n rend_v when_o as_o one_o be_v addict_v to_o this_o minister_n and_o another_o to_o that_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n say_v to_o the_o corinthian_n 3.4_o 1._o cor._n 1.12_o 1._o cor._n 3.4_o i_o hear_v that_o there_o be_v contention_n among_o you_o for_o everye_o one_o say_v i_o be_o of_o paul_n and_o i_o be_o of_o apollo_n and_o i_o be_o of_o cephas_n and_o i_o be_o of_o christ_n be_v christ_n divide_v be_v paul_n crucify_a for_o you_o 23.8_o math._n 23.8_o either_o be_v you_o baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o paul_n to_o this_o end_n also_o pertain_v the_o say_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o you_o call_v lord_n for_o one_o be_v your_o lord_n even_o christ_n c._n therefore_o they_o be_v here_o note_v which_o be_v rather_o lead_v with_o the_o vain_a and_o wicked_a love_n of_o man_n than_o with_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o we_o be_v admonish_v to_o have_v regard_n to_o this_o one_o thing_n and_o to_o seek_v by_o all_o mean_v possible_a that_o christ_n alone_o may_v be_v glorify_v 4.1_o 1._o cor._n 4.1_o a._n and_o as_o for_o all_o other_o let_v we_o esteem_v they_o as_o the_o minister_n of_o christ_n and_o as_o dispensatour_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o god_n 26._o and_o they_o come_v unto_o john_n and_o say_v unto_o he_o rabbi_n he_o that_o be_v with_o thou_o beyond_o jordane_n to_o who_o thou_o bear_v witness_v behold_v the_o same_o baptize_v and_o all_o man_n come_v to_o he_o and_o they_o come_v to_o john_n par._n the_o disciple_n of_o john_n go_v about_o to_o turn_v away_o the_o people_n from_o the_o baptism_n of_o jesu_n and_o to_o persuade_v that_o the_o baptism_n of_o john_n be_v more_o effectual_a to_o wash_v away_o sin_n than_o the_o baptism_n of_o our_o lord_n jesu_n the_o which_o thing_n when_o they_o can_v not_o persuade_v the_o people_n unto_o they_o come_v unto_o john_n make_v complaint_n unto_o he_o and_o think_v that_o he_o will_v take_v it_o in_o evil_a part_n and_o by_o some_o mean_n or_o other_o restrain_v this_o emulation_n m._n and_o they_o find_v no_o fault_n with_o the_o legal_a purifyinge_n but_o with_o the_o baptism_n of_o christ_n and_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o emulation_n they_o be_v ful_o bend_v against_o christ_n for_o johns_n sake_n even_o as_o josuah_n 11.28_o num._n 11.28_o be_v zealous_a for_o moses_n and_o true_o this_o emulation_n or_o envy_n be_v so_o much_o the_o worse_o for_o that_o contemptuouslye_o they_o speak_v of_o christ_n for_o to_o extenuate_v and_o abase_v christ_n they_o geve_v he_o no_o manner_n of_o title_n of_o reverence_n whereas_o they_o call_v john_n master_n as_o if_o they_o shall_v have_v say_v he_o which_o join_v himself_o to_o thou_o as_o a_o friend_n and_o favourer_n of_o thy_o cause_n and_o which_o be_v baptise_a of_o thou_o of_o who_o also_o for_o honour_n sake_n thou_o bear_v witness_v as_o of_o a_o holy_a man_n behold_v the_o same_o be_v now_o convert_v and_o turn_v another_o way_n abuse_v thy_o testimony_n against_o thou_o presume_v to_o baptise_v and_o have_v go_v so_o far_o that_o all_o man_n now_o come_v to_o he_o the_o which_o no_o doubt_n will_v fall_v out_o great_o to_o the_o defase_a of_o thy_o honour_n and_o fame_n r._n therefore_o we_o pray_v thou_o that_o by_o thy_o authority_n thou_o will_v forbid_v he_o and_o his_o disciple_n to_o baptise_v for_o it_o be_v a_o venture_n if_o they_o proceed_v lest_o we_o be_v forsake_v and_o despise_v for_o all_o man_n forsake_v we_o gooe_v to_o they_o and_o be_v baptise_a bu_n behold_v the_o fruit_n of_o a_o rash_a zeal_n without_o knowledge_n knowledge_n zeal_n with_o out_o knowledge_n b._n hereby_o also_o it_o appear_v how_o soon_o good_a man_n may_v be_v make_v the_o author_n of_o sect_n against_o their_o wylle_n to_o who_o thou_o bear_v witness_v c._n by_o this_o argument_n either_o they_o gooe_v about_o to_o make_v christ_n inferior_a to_o john_n or_o else_o to_o make_v he_o bind_v unto_o john_n because_o he_o be_v come_v to_o honour_n for_o they_o count_v it_o for_o a_o great_a benefit_n that_o john_n have_v give_v to_o christ_n such_o glorious_a title_n and_o name_n concern_v the_o messiah_n and_o whereas_o they_o add_v that_o all_o man_n come_v unto_o christ_n that_o procee_v of_o most_o wicked_a envy_n for_o they_o fear_v jest_n their_o master_n shall_v be_v forsake_v straight_o way_n of_o the_o multitude_n a._n the_o like_a almost_o speak_v the_o high_a priest_n and_o pharisées_fw-fr of_o christ_n say_v if_o we_o let_v he_o go_v thus_o 8.12_o john_n 11.48_o joh._n 12.19_o john_n 8.12_o all_o man_n will_v believe_v on_o he_o also_o say_v they_o you_o see_v that_o you_o profit_v nothing_o behold_v all_o the_o whole_a world_n go_v after_o he_o but_o i_o will_v to_o god_n all_o the_o world_n will_v follow_v christ_n for_o he_o which_o follow_v he_o walk_v not_o in_o darkness_n but_o have_v the_o light_n of_o life_n 27._o john_n answer_v and_o say_v a_o man_n can_v receyve_v nothing_o except_o it_o be_v give_v he_o from_o above_o certain_a refer_v these_o word_n unto_o christ_n as_o though_o john_n shall_v accuse_v his_o disciple_n of_o wicked_a presumption_n against_o god_n in_o go_v about_o to_o take_v away_o from_o christ_n that_o which_o be_v give_v he_o of_o his_o father_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v no_o man_n will_v usurp_v or_o take_v any_o such_o thing_n upon_o he_o except_o it_o be_v give_v he_o from_o above_o let_v it_o not_o therefore_o offend_v you_o that_o he_o gather_v disciple_n unto_o he_o by_o baptism_n and_o that_o many_o come_v unto_o he_o i_o will_v to_o god_n that_o both_o you_o and_o all_o other_o man_n will_v acknowledge_v he_o for_o a_o master_n and_o principal_a teacher_n in_o vain_a therefore_o you_o go_v about_o to_o abase_v he_o who_o god_n have_v exalt_v but_o other_o some_o think_v it_o to_o be_v a_o exclamation_n into_o the_o which_o he_o burst_v forth_o even_o for_o very_a grief_n that_o his_o disciple_n have_v so_o little_o profit_v and_o verylye_o they_o be_v to_o much_o blind_v in_o seek_v to_o make_v he_o no_o better_o than_o his_o servant_n who_o they_o have_v hear_v so_o often_o to_o be_v christ_n therefore_o john_n may_v have_v just_o pronounce_v that_o he_o have_v spend_v his_o labour_n in_o vain_a in_o teach_v man_n both_o deaf_a and_o senseless_a until_o they_o be_v renew_v in_o mind_n but_o their_o sentence_n be_v more_o probable_a which_o refer_v these_o word_n to_o john_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v it_o be_v not_o in_o your_o nor_o my_o power_n to_o make_v myself_o great_a because_o everye_o one_o of_o we_o must_v be_v such_o as_o it_o shall_v please_v god_n to_o appoint_v 5.5_o heb._n 5.5_o for_o he_o which_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n have_v not_o honour_v himself_o what_o man_n be_v he_o that_o dare_v presume_v to_o covette_n more_o than_o it_o shall_v please_v the_o lord_n to_o geve_v he_o therefore_o it_o do_v not_o appertain_v to_o my_o authority_n to_o stay_v christ_n from_o his_o office_n for_o this_o be_v my_o office_n only_o which_o i_o have_v receyve_v from_o god_n to_o prepare_v the_o way_n before_o christ_n that_o i_o may_v be_v the_o voice_n of_o a_o crier_n in_o the_o wilderness_n to_o baptise_v with_o water_n
rather_o with_o all_o our_o might_n to_o seek_v the_o advauncement_n of_o his_o glory_n &_o that_o by_o the_o sincere_a preach_v of_o god_n word_n as_o the_o lord_n himself_o signify_v to_o peter_n say_v simon_n joanna_n love_v thou_o i_o 21.15_o joh._n 21.15_o more_o than_o these_o feed_v my_o lamb_n and_o the_o apostle_n paul_n say_v it_o be_v require_v at_o the_o hand_n of_o steward_n that_o they_o be_v find_v faithful_a 4.2_o 1._o cor._n 4.2_o therefore_o he_o can_v be_v a_o true_a minister_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v not_o a_o friend_n to_o christ_n whereupon_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o himself_o affirm_v that_o he_o be_v a_o friend_n to_o the_o true_a bridegroom_n of_o this_o church_n say_v for_o i_o be_o jealous_a over_o you_o with_o godly_a gelousie_n 11.2_o 2._o cor._n 11.2_o for_o i_o have_v couple_v you_o to_o one_o man_n to_o present_v you_o a_o chaste_a virgin_n unto_o christ_n r._n therefore_o christ_n be_v the_o bridegroom_n and_o the_o church_n be_v the_o spouse_n c._n and_o as_o he_o truelye_o offer_v himself_o unto_o we_o that_o he_o may_v be_v we_o even_o so_o at_o our_o hand_n just_o he_o require_v that_o faith_n and_o love_n which_o the_o wife_n owe_v to_o the_o husband_n and_o as_o for_o the_o chastity_n which_o he_o require_v that_o special_o consist_v in_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o in_o our_o constancy_n in_o the_o pure_a simplicity_n of_o the_o same_o a._n hereupon_o the_o apostle_n peter_n write_v to_o the_o faithful_a say_n 1.22_o 1._o pet._n 1.22_o you_o which_o have_v purify_v your_o soul_n through_o the_o spirit_n in_o obey_v the_o truth_n c._n therefore_o we_o must_v be_v subject_a to_o christ_n alone_o he_o must_v be_v our_o only_a head_n we_o must_v not_o swerve_v the_o breadth_n of_o a_o here_o from_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o christ_n above_o all_o other_o must_v be_v glorify_v that_o he_o may_v retain_v and_o keep_v the_o right_n and_o place_n of_o the_o bridegroom_n but_o what_o say_v you_o to_o the_o minister_n very_o the_o son_n of_o god_n call_v they_o to_o attend_v upon_o he_o in_o the_o time_n of_o celebrate_v the_o sacred_a marriage_n wherefore_o it_o belong_v unto_o they_o to_o seek_v by_o all_o mean_v possible_a to_o deliver_v unto_o the_o bridegroom_n who_o care_n be_v commit_v unto_o they_o a_o pure_a and_o chaste_a virgin_n but_o they_o which_o seek_v to_o bring_v the_o church_n rather_o to_o themselves_o than_o unto_o christ_n do_v falselye_o violate_v the_o marriage_n which_o they_o ought_v to_o honest_a and_o adorn_v and_o look_v how_o christ_n do_v endew_v his_o disciple_n with_o the_o great_a honour_n in_o make_v they_o keeper_n of_o his_o spouse_n the_o great_a be_v their_o infidelity_n if_o they_o seek_v not_o to_o preserve_v his_o right_a unuiolated_a m._n for_o the_o minister_n ought_v to_o stand_v and_o hear_v what_o the_o bridegroom_n command_v and_o then_o to_o induce_v other_o to_o his_o obedience_n whereupon_o saint_n john_n say_v not_o that_o he_o rejoice_v because_o of_o the_o bridegroom_n but_o because_o of_o the_o bridegroom_n voice_n a._n the_o which_o say_v i_o will_v to_o god_n be_v well_o note_v of_o those_o which_o be_v not_o afraid_a to_o object_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n against_o the_o very_a word_n of_o christ_n as_o though_o christ_n the_o only_a and_o true_a spouse_n of_o the_o church_n have_v leave_v a_o imperfect_a and_o lame_a doctrine_n to_o the_o faithful_a for_o he_o say_v i_o say_v not_o unto_o you_o 15._o john_n 15._o that_o you_o be_v servant_n because_o the_o servant_n know_v not_o what_o his_o master_n do_v but_o i_o have_v call_v you_o friend_n because_o i_o have_v declare_v unto_o you_o all_o thing_n that_o i_o have_v hear_v of_o my_o father_n m._n therefore_o all_o authority_n be_v give_v to_o the_o bridegroom_n not_o to_o the_o bride_n to_o the_o bridegroom_n be_v give_v a_o voice_n to_o speak_v and_o to_o command_v to_o the_o bride_n be_v give_v ear_n to_o hear_v according_a to_o this_o say_n harken_v o_o daughter_n and_o see_v 45.11_o psal_n 45.11_o and_o incline_v thy_o ear_n c._n therefore_o john_n the_o baptist_n affirm_v that_o he_o have_v obtain_v his_o full_a desire_n in_o that_o he_o séee_v christ_n to_o reign_v and_o to_o have_v that_o audience_n which_o he_o deserve_v bu_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v as_o he_o which_o be_v not_o the_o bridegroom_n but_o a_o friend_n to_o the_o bridegroom_n and_o a_o looker_n on_o neither_o envy_v the_o bridegroom_n felicity_n nor_o take_v away_o his_o bride_n but_o rather_o rejoice_v for_o the_o marriage_n make_v between_o they_o boath_n and_o stand_v by_o rejoice_v hereat_o secret_o in_o his_o heart_n and_o not_o open_o because_o he_o see_v the_o labour_n which_o he_o take_v in_o make_v the_o marriage_n to_o have_v prosperous_a success_n and_o the_o bride_n which_o be_v bring_v of_o the_o bridegroom_n to_o enjoy_v most_o sweet_a and_o pleasant_a company_n of_o the_o same_o even_o so_o i_o be_v a_o foorerunner_n of_o christ_n not_o the_o bridegroom_n but_o a_o friend_n of_o the_o bridegroom_n whole_o desire_v that_o the_o people_n of_o god_n may_v be_v associate_n and_o unite_a to_o his_o marriage_n neither_o do_v i_o envy_v his_o great_a glory_n neither_o will_v i_o pull_v from_o he_o his_o people_n but_o do_v most_o hearty_o rejoice_v that_o i_o have_v live_v unto_o this_o day_n most_o happelye_o with_o my_o eye_n to_o behold_v and_o see_v that_o my_o preach_a have_v not_o be_v in_o vain_a but_o that_o all_o man_n speedy_o come_v unto_o christ_n to_o who_o i_o have_v hitherto_o invite_v they_o this_o my_o exceed_a joy_n i_o say_v be_v fulfil_v c._n verylye_n whosoever_o be_v so_o affect_v that_o he_o will_v seek_v christ_n and_o not_o himself_o and_o be_v content_v to_o have_v christ_n honour_n advance_v shall_v faithful_o and_o profitablye_o govern_v the_o church_n but_o whosoever_o shall_v decline_v either_o to_o the_o right_a hand_n or_o to_o the_o left_a from_o this_o way_n shall_v be_v a_o unchaste_a adulterer_n and_o can_v not_o choose_v but_o corrupt_a and_o defile_v the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n 30._o he_o must_v increase_v but_o i_o must_v decrease_v r._n this_o be_v a_o very_a short_a sentence_n but_o yet_o worthy_a to_o be_v note_v c._n for_o because_o john_n be_v at_o the_o first_o high_o advance_v by_o the_o lord_n he_o show_v that_o he_o receyve_v this_o honour_n but_o for_o a_o time_n and_o must_v now_o that_o the_o son_n of_o righteousness_n be_v rise_v geve_v place_n therefore_o he_o do_v not_o only_o repel_v and_o reject_v the_o vain_a title_n of_o honour_n which_o man_n ignorant_o and_o erroniouslye_o have_v give_v unto_o he_o but_o also_o seek_v careful_o that_o the_o true_a and_o lawful_a honour_n which_o the_o lord_n have_v bestow_v upon_o he_o shall_v not_o obscure_v the_o glory_n of_o christ_n for_o this_o cause_n he_o say_v that_o hitherto_o he_o be_v count_v for_o a_o great_a prophet_n and_o that_o he_o be_v appoint_v to_o enjoy_v his_o dignity_n until_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n to_o who_o he_o ought_v to_o render_v up_o the_o same_o b._n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v now_o i_o have_v thorough_o discharge_v my_o office_n bu_n i_o say_v that_o christ_n shall_v come_v yea_o i_o have_v preach_v that_o he_o be_v come_v already_o i_o have_v promise_v remission_n of_o sin_n and_o all_o other_o grace_n in_o he_o and_o to_o this_o christ_n i_o have_v call_v all_o man_n therefore_o there_o remain_v nothing_o now_o but_o that_o he_o alone_o shall_v live_v teach_v flourish_n reign_n and_o shall_v be_v all_o in_o all_o to_o his_o saint_n in_o the_o church_n neither_o must_v there_o be_v have_v any_o regard_n to_o i_o any_o long_o for_o it_o be_v meet_v that_o his_o glory_n shall_v be_v alone_o increase_v in_o the_o world_n and_o be_v know_v unto_o man_n and_o contrariwise_o that_o my_o name_n as_o the_o name_n of_o a_o minister_n or_o servant_n decrease_v m._n and_o it_o be_v to_o be_v note_v that_o he_o say_v not_o he_o increase_v and_o i_o be_o deminish_v for_o his_o disciple_n see_v this_o &_o be_v sorry_a for_o it_o and_o complain_v thereof_o but_o to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v admonish_v they_o that_o there_o be_v nothing_o do_v but_o that_o which_o of_o necessity_n must_v be_v do_v and_o which_o ought_v not_o nor_o can_v not_o be_v let_v or_o hinder_v he_o say_v he_o must_v increase_v but_o i_o must_v decrease_v and_o christ_n increase_v when_o his_o knowledge_n and_o glory_n shine_v more_o and_o more_o in_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n john_n diminish_v when_o the_o opinion_n of_o his_o name_n decrease_v before_o those_o which_o come_v to_o hear_v christ_n bu_n otherwise_o john_n keep_v his_o glory_n and_o honour_n in_o the_o church_n 11.11_o
math._n 11.11_o because_o among_o woman_n child_n there_o arise_v not_o a_o great_a than_o john_n the_o baptist_n for_o he_o shall_v be_v count_v for_o ever_o as_o a_o good_a faithful_a and_o true_a witness_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o yet_o not_o for_o the_o messiah_n as_o many_o than_o think_v he_o to_o be_v but_o for_o a_o faithful_a forerunner_n and_o minister_n of_o the_o messiah_n the_o which_o i_o will_v to_o god_n they_o will_v dilligentlye_o note_n and_o consider_v which_o at_o this_o day_n make_v much_o prate_n of_o the_o intercession_n and_o worship_n of_o saintes_n r._n by_o this_o sentence_n also_o we_o be_v admonish_v that_o all_o the_o auctority_n dignity_n office_n righteousness_n wisdom_n and_o power_n of_o man_n must_v fall_v down_o that_o the_o authority_n dignity_n office_n righteousness_n wisdom_n and_o power_n of_o christ_n may_v be_v establish_v 31._o he_o that_o come_v from_o a_o high_a be_v above_o all_o he_o that_o be_v of_o the_o earth_n be_v earthly_a and_o speak_v of_o the_o earth_n he_o that_o come_v from_o heaven_n be_v above_o all_o he_o that_o come_v from_o a_o high_a bu_n thus_o far_o saint_n john_n have_v remove_v the_o sinister_a and_o false_a opinion_n which_o the_o people_n have_v conceyve_v of_o he_o &_o now_o he_o declare_v his_o mind_n and_o judgement_n concern_v christ_n c._n and_o show_v by_o another_o similitude_n how_o much_o christ_n differ_v from_o all_o other_o man_n and_o how_o great_o he_o excel_v they_o for_o he_o compare_v he_o to_o the_o king_n and_o most_o excellent_a governor_n who_o speak_v from_o his_o high_a throne_n be_v to_o be_v hear_v for_o the_o reverence_n of_o his_o empery_n sake_n but_o he_o teach_v that_o it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o he_o to_o speak_v from_o of_o his_o footstool_n bu_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v this_o man_n be_v not_o a_o man_n only_o as_o you_o think_v but_o god_n also_o and_o he_o come_v from_o a_o high_a and_o have_v be_v from_o the_o beginning_n by_o who_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v and_o therefore_o he_o teach_v thing_n both_o heavenlye_a and_o divine_a why_o then_o shall_v not_o all_o man_n come_v unto_o he_o therefore_o he_o say_v that_o christ_n come_v from_o a_o high_a not_o only_o in_o that_o he_o be_v god_n but_o also_o because_o in_o he_o there_o be_v nothing_o to_o be_v see_v but_o that_o which_o be_v full_a of_o majesty_n and_o heavenlye_a m._n and_o whereas_o it_o be_v say_v that_o christ_n descend_v from_o above_o it_o be_v no_o otherwise_o to_o be_v understand_v than_o of_o the_o prerogative_n of_o the_o original_n by_o which_o he_o come_v into_o this_o world_n not_o only_o from_o heaven_n but_o also_o from_o god_n the_o father_n be_v the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n for_o otherwise_o the_o angel_n come_v from_o heaven_n to_o who_o notwithstanding_o that_o dignity_n do_v not_o belong_v which_o be_v here_o give_v to_o christ_n who_o say_v i_o go_v out_o from_o the_o father_n and_o come_v into_o the_o world_n 16.28_o joh._n 16.28_o b._n furthermore_o to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v most_o evident_o set_v before_o the_o eye_n of_o all_o man_n the_o dignity_n and_o excellency_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o may_v allure_v the_o whole_a world_n and_o his_o disciple_n to_o worship_n to_o hear_v to_o embrace_v and_o to_o receive_v he_o he_o add_v that_o christ_n be_v above_o all_o m._n that_o be_v to_o say_v above_o all_o mortal_a man_n and_o above_o all_o creature_n yea_o above_o the_o very_a angel_n he_o say_v not_o he_o shall_v be_v above_o all_o but_o he_o be_v above_o all_o because_o he_o do_v not_o declare_v of_o what_o estimation_n christ_n be_v among_o the_o jew_n to_o who_o he_o be_v the_o outecaste_n of_o the_o people_n 22.7_o esay_n 53.3_o psal_n 22.7_o a_o worm_n and_o no_o man_n yea_o and_o the_o reproach_n of_o man_n but_o how_o he_o be_v esteem_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n his_o father_n 1.2_o heb._n 1.2_o bu_n for_o all_o thing_n be_v subject_a unto_o he_o he_o be_v the_o lord_n of_o all_o and_o be_v subject_a to_o none_o according_a to_o his_o divine_a substance_n but_o he_o be_v equal_a with_o his_o father_n and_o rule_v over_o all_o he_o that_o be_v of_o the_o earth_n be_v earthly_a c._n that_o be_v to_o say_v he_o that_o be_v of_o the_o earth_n savour_v of_o his_o original_n and_o according_a to_o the_o condition_n of_o his_o nature_n stay_v himself_o upon_o the_o order_n of_o heavenlye_a thing_n heaven_n christ_n only_o speak_v from_o heaven_n this_o therefore_o he_o affirm_v to_o be_v proper_a only_o unto_o christ_n to_o speak_v from_o a_o high_a because_o he_o speak_v from_o heaven_n therefore_o he_o call_v christ_n heavenlye_a 15._o 1._o cor._n 15._o even_o as_o the_o apostle_n call_v he_o in_o that_o collation_n in_o the_o which_o he_o compare_v he_o to_o adam_n and_o by_o these_o word_n man_n nature_n be_v extenuate_v and_o abase_v to_o the_o end_n all_o flesh_n may_v learn_v to_o abase_v and_o humble_v itself_o fore_o god._n even_o so_o must_v man_n nature_n be_v humble_v and_o abase_v when_o it_o be_v compare_v with_o that_o which_o be_v divine_a and_o celestial_a so_o abraham_n when_o he_o talk_v with_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n say_v 18.27_o gen._n 18.27_o i_o have_v begin_v to_o speak_v with_o god_n and_o be_o but_o dust_n and_o ash_n even_o so_o so_o often_o as_o we_o be_v draw_v unto_o pride_n we_o must_v be_v put_v in_o mind_n of_o our_o own_o imbecility_n baseness_n and_o corruption_n as_o first_o from_o whence_o we_o be_v namely_o from_o the_o earth_n secondlye_o what_o we_o be_v name_o terrestrial_a and_o earthly_a thirdelye_o what_o we_o be_v able_a to_o do_v or_o what_o be_v those_o thing_n which_o we_o speak_v think_v and_o do_v as_o of_o ourselves_o name_o terren_z and_o earthly_a therefore_o whosoever_o shall_v consider_v these_o thing_n dilligentlye_o and_o with_o his_o heart_n pride_n man_n corrupt_a nature_n beat_v down_o his_o pride_n he_o shall_v not_o boast_v nor_o exalte_n himself_o neither_o against_o man_n nor_o against_o god._n b._n and_o if_o it_o fortune_n that_o man_n dignity_n at_o any_o time_n be_v extol_v it_o be_v so_o extol_v and_o commend_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o image_n of_o god_n which_o he_o have_v ingrave_v in_o man_n but_o because_o 1●_n psa_fw-la 49_o 1●_n when_o he_o be_v in_o honour_n he_o understand_v not_o therefore_o he_o be_v compare_v to_o the_o beast_n that_o be_v without_o understanding_n and_o be_v make_v like_o unto_o they_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v needful_a that_o he_o shall_v be_v always_o put_v in_o mind_n of_o his_o baseness_n and_o of_o his_o profit_n question_n c._n but_o it_o may_v be_v demand_v if_o john_n the_o baptist_n come_v not_o also_o from_o heaven_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o vocation_n and_o office_n and_o be_v therefore_o to_o be_v hear_v the_o lord_n speak_v by_o his_o mouth_n for_o he_o seem_v to_o be_v injurious_a to_o the_o heavenly_a doctrine_n which_o he_o preach_v m._n for_o see_v he_o speak_v general_o of_o all_o man_n and_o put_v himself_o without_o all_o doubt_n in_o the_o same_o number_n how_o can_v that_o belong_v unto_o he_o which_o he_o say_v and_o speak_v of_o the_o earth_n be_v those_o thing_n which_o he_o preach_v and_o the_o testimony_n which_o he_o bear_v unto_o christ_n and_o the_o baptism_n wherewith_o he_o baptize_v christ_n earthly_a if_o they_o be_v earthly_a how_o can_v the_o evangelist_n say_v 1.6_o john_n 1.6_o there_o be_v a_o man_n send_v from_o god_n who_o name_n be_v john_n in_o like_a manner_n 2d_o mat._n 21_o 2d_o how_o do_v christ_n argue_v and_o affirm_v that_o the_o baptism_n of_o john_n be_v from_o heaven_n 3●_n luke_n 7_o 3●_n also_o in_o another_o place_n he_o call_v the_o baptism_n of_o john_n the_o counsel_n of_o god_n despise_v of_o the_o pharisées_fw-fr if_o these_o thing_n be_v not_o of_o the_o earth_n but_o heavenly_a how_o then_o do_v he_o say_v here_o of_o himself_o he_o which_o be_v of_o the_o earth_n be_v earthly_a answer_v answer_v and_o speak_v of_o the_o earth_n c._n answer_v here_o unto_o may_v thus_o be_v make_v this_o which_o john_n here_o speak_v be_v not_o simple_o speak_v but_o comparativelye_o if_o we_o consider_v of_o minister_n by_o themselves_o they_o speak_v as_o it_o be_v from_o heaven_n with_o great_a authority_n that_o which_o be_v command_v they_o of_o god_n but_o so_o soon_o as_o they_o begin_v to_o oppose_v they_o or_o compare_v they_o with_o christ_n we_o ought_v not_o so_o the_o apostle_n compare_v the_o law_n with_o the_o gospel_n say_v 12.25_o hebr._n 12.25_o if_o they_o escape_v not_o which_o refuse_v he_o that_o speak_v on_o earth_n much_o more_o shall_v we_o not_o escape_v if_o we_o turn_v away_o from_o he_o that_o speak_v
wrath_n of_o god_n shall_v come_v on_o he_o but_z the_o wrath_n of_o god_n abide_v on_o he_o all_o mortal_a man_n which_o be_v bear_v bring_v with_o they_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n and_o that_o for_o the_o sin_n which_o they_o have_v draw_v from_o adam_n but_o the_o son_n of_o god_n come_v have_v no_o sin_n and_o have_v on_o he_o our_o flesh_n be_v amongst_o we_o to_o turn_v away_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n if_o so_o be_v man_n will_v receyve_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n offer_v unto_o he_o he_z therefore_o which_o beléeve_v not_o the_o son_n the_o wrath_n of_o god_n abide_v on_o he_o what_o wrath_n be_v that_o surelye_o the_o very_a same_o of_o the_o which_o the_o apostle_n speak_v say_v 2.3_o ephe._n 2.3_o we_o be_v by_o nature_n the_o child_n of_o wrath_n c._n and_o although_o they_o which_o be_v natural_o condemn_v be_v reprobate_n already_o yet_o notwithstanding_o they_o bring_v new_a death_n unto_o themselves_o by_o their_o own_o infidelity_n 16.19_o math._n 16.19_o and_o to_o this_o end_n the_o power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v be_v give_v to_o the_o minister_n for_o this_o be_v the_o just_a punishment_n of_o man_n contumacye_n and_o pride_n that_o they_o which_o shake_v of_o the_o wholesome_a yoke_n of_o god_n do_v tie_v themselves_o with_o the_o bond_n of_o death_n m._n here_o therefore_o be_v appoint_v the_o perpetuitye_n and_o durance_n of_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o punishment_n of_o the_o wicked_a for_o as_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o he_o shall_v live_v unto_o god_n who_o so_o ever_o he_o be_v that_o be_v capable_a of_o his_o everlasting_a goodness_n for_o he_o be_v not_o the_o god_n of_o the_o dead_a but_o of_o the_o live_a so_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o he_o be_v guilty_a and_o destroy_v for_o ever_o which_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o everlasting_a wrath_n of_o god_n through_o incredulity_n hereupon_o it_o be_v say_v 3.12_o math._n 3.12_o that_o he_o will_v burn_v the_o chaff_n with_o unquencheable_a fire_n they_o shall_v go_v into_o everlasting_a torment_n their_o worm_n shall_v not_o die_v 66.24_o math._n 25.46_o esa_n 66.24_o and_o the_o fire_n shall_v not_o be_v quench_v r._n this_o be_v a_o notable_a sermon_n of_o john_n the_o baptist_n the_o which_o we_o ought_v always_o to_o remember_v for_o he_o preach_v unto_o we_o christ_n and_o set_v he_o before_o we_o to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v know_v what_o great_a treasure_n of_o blessing_n we_o possess_v in_o he_o through_o faith_n bu_n let_v we_o therefore_o often_o time_n diligent_o read_v over_o the_o same_o and_o deep_o consider_v the_o same_o in_o our_o mind_n and_o then_o we_o shall_v reap_v thereby_o the_o most_o pleasant_a fruit_n of_o the_o lively_a knowledge_n and_o faith_n of_o christ_n which_o from_o time_n to_o time_n shall_v increase_v and_o grow_v more_o and_o more_o and_o abide_v firm_a and_o sound_o for_o ever_o ❧_o the_o four_o chapter_n 1._o as_o soon_o as_o the_o lord_n know_v how_o the_o pharisee_n have_v hear_v that_o jesus_n make_v and_o baptize_v mo_z disciple_n than_o john_n r._n in_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o former_a chapter_n the_o evangelist_n have_v describe_v the_o true_a way_n of_o justify_v now_o in_o this_o chapter_n he_o add_v the_o example_n of_o true_a justification_n in_o the_o harlot_n of_o samaria_n lest_o that_o doctrine_n shall_v seem_v frivolous_a and_o vain_a for_o want_v of_o a_o example_n bu_n all_o the_o part_n of_o this_o history_n be_v very_o well_o knit_v together_o for_o now_o the_o evangelist_n pass_v from_o the_o communication_n of_o christ_n &_o nicodemus_n and_o from_o the_o testimony_n of_o john_n to_o describe_v another_o conference_n between_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o woman_n of_o samaria_n c._n and_o first_o of_o all_o he_o show_v the_o cause_n why_o our_o saviour_n christ_n go_v out_o of_o judea_n for_o when_o he_o know_v that_o the_o pharisées_fw-fr be_v evyll_n affection_a he_o will_v not_o put_v himself_o in_o danger_n of_o their_o fury_n before_o the_o appoint_a time_n come_v therefore_o leave_v jewrye_n he_o go_v again_o into_o galilee_n wherefore_o he_o come_v not_o of_o purpose_n into_o samaria_n there_o to_o abide_v but_o because_o he_o must_v pass_v through_o the_o same_o into_o galilee_n assoon_o as_o the_o lord_n know_v m._n the_o evangelist_n speak_v not_o here_o as_o though_o the_o lord_n be_v at_o any_o time_n ignorant_a of_o the_o practice_n of_o his_o enemy_n for_o he_o need_v not_o be_v admonish_v of_o the_o devise_n of_o his_o enemy_n for_o he_o know_v their_o evyll_n cogitation_n &_o therefore_o he_o shun_v their_o fury_n c._n the_o evangelist_n make_v mention_v only_o of_o the_o pharisee_n which_o be_v swear_v enemy_n unto_o christ_n not_o that_o the_o other_o scribe_n be_v his_o friend_n but_o because_o this_o sect_n of_o the_o pharisées_fw-fr than_o reign_v and_o be_v mad_a under_o the_o pretence_n of_o a_o godly_a zeal_n saint_n john_n say_v here_o that_o these_o man_n hear_v how_o that_o christ_n make_v and_o baptise_a more_o disciple_n than_o john_n the_o baptist_n but_o he_o say_v not_o that_o they_o see_v this_o first_o of_o all_o this_o be_v heretical_a by_o the_o sacerdotal_a or_o priestly_a judgement_n for_o this_o may_v have_v divide_v the_o church_n and_o have_v bread_n schism_n for_o so_o many_o as_o become_v the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n and_o be_v baptise_a go_v to_o a_o new_a church_n and_o embrace_v the_o yoke_n of_o christ_n be_v draw_v from_o the_o government_n of_o the_o pharisées_fw-fr scribe_n and_o priest_n c._n moreover_o their_o mind_n be_v stir_v up_o before_o by_o the_o gather_n together_o of_o disciple_n by_o john_n they_o be_v now_o the_o more_o exasperate_a and_o set_v on_o fire_n when_o they_o see_v that_o christ_n come_v and_o draw_v more_o disciple_n after_o he_o than_o john_n have_v do_v for_o from_o the_o time_n that_o john_n preach_v himself_o to_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o forerunner_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o great_a number_n follow_v christ_n and_o the_o ministry_n of_o john_n begin_v now_o to_o cease_v and_o so_o by_o little_a and_o little_a he_o resign_v to_o christ_n the_o office_n of_o teach_v and_o baptise_v a._n as_o he_o himself_o have_v say_v 3_o math._n 3_o he_o must_v increase_v but_o i_o must_v decrease_v the_o lord_n make_v disciple_n that_o be_v to_o say_v he_o win_v unto_o he_o hearer_n and_o bind_v they_o unto_o he_o with_o the_o knot_n of_o religion_n and_o in_o very_a deed_n the_o hearer_n of_o the_o lord_n have_v be_v always_o call_v from_o the_o beginning_n disciple_n afterward_o christian_n 2._o though_o that_o jesus_n himself_o baptise_a not_o but_o his_o disciple_n a._n it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o two_o and_o twenty_o verse_n of_o the_o chapter_n go_v before_o that_o christ_n be_v in_o jewrye_n and_o that_o he_o there_o baptise_a the_o which_o saint_n john_n here_o expound_v say_v that_o he_o baptise_a by_o his_o disciple_n aug._n therefore_o the_o lord_n baptise_a baptize_v christ_n baptize_v not_o &_o yet_o do_v baptize_v and_o baptise_a not_o for_o he_o baptise_a because_o it_o be_v he_o that_o cleanse_v wash_v and_o purify_v the_o sin_n he_o baptise_a not_o because_o he_o use_v not_o the_o outward_a sacrament_n of_o dip_v or_o duck_v in_o the_o water_n the_o disciple_n use_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o body_n and_o he_o join_v thereunto_o his_o majesty_n and_o grace_n b._n therefore_o the_o lord_n baptise_a by_o the_o ministry_n of_o his_o disciple_n this_o outward_a sign_n be_v commit_v to_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o this_o ministry_n christ_n choose_v his_o apostle_n as_o therefore_o by_o this_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o be_v order_v &_o govern_v even_o so_o he_o think_v good_a to_o prepare_v his_o apostle_n to_o the_o same_o and_o to_o enter_v they_o into_o this_o holy_a ministry_n m._n for_o he_o say_v afterward_o to_o his_o apostle_n go_v you_o forth_o 1●_n mat._n 28.19_o mat._n 16_o 1●_n and_o teach_v all_o nation_n and_o baptise_v they_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n c._n so_o that_o we_o see_v that_o the_o same_o be_v call_v the_o baptism_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v minister_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o other_o man_n to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v know_v that_o baptism_n do_v not_o depend_v upon_o the_o person_n of_o the_o minister_n but_o that_o the_o force_n thereof_o do_v whole_o hang_v upon_o the_o author_n in_o who_o name_n and_o at_o who_o commandment_n the_o same_o be_v minister_v whereby_o we_o have_v a_o singular_a consolation_n for_o see_v we_o know_v that_o our_o baptism_n be_v of_o no_o less_o efficasie_a to_o cleanse_v and_o to_o renew_v we_o than_o if_o the_o same_o be_v give_v to_o we_o of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n himself_o
as_o they_o have_v hear_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o woman_n concern_v christ_n and_o do_v béeleve_v first_o of_o all_o they_o go_v out_o of_o the_o city_n to_o see_v he_o on_o who_o they_o beléeve_v then_o have_v so_o do_v and_o be_v not_o content_v to_o have_v see_v he_o once_o they_o desire_v to_o abide_v with_o he_o for_o ever_o and_o therefore_o they_o request_v he_o to_o tarry_v still_o with_o they_o 1.23_o phili._n 1.23_o thus_o be_v they_o always_o affect_v which_o true_o know_v and_o love_n christ_n so_o paul_n desire_v to_o be_v dissolve_v and_o to_o be_v with_o christ_n the_o which_o christ_n also_o promise_v to_o his_o disciple_n say_v 14.3_o joh._n 14.3_o i_o will_v come_v again_o and_o take_v you_o to_o myself_o that_o where_o i_o be_o there_o may_v you_o be_v also_o also_o paul_n foreshow_v that_o this_o shall_v not_o be_v without_o great_a consolation_n 4.17_o thes_n 4.17_o say_v and_o so_o shall_v we_o always_o be_v with_o the_o lord_n par._n therefore_o when_o they_o have_v obtain_v their_o desire_n and_o see_v he_o stand_v before_o their_o face_n they_o be_v nothing_o offend_v at_o his_o base_a and_o contemptible_a form_n have_v no_o manner_n of_o kingly_a show_n but_o they_o rather_o invite_v he_o as_o the_o gever_n of_o great_a benefit_n &_o beseech_v he_o that_o he_o will_v vouchsafe_v to_o lodge_v in_o their_o city_n and_o he_o abide_v there_o two_o day_n m._n be_v entreat_v he_o tarry_v for_o a_o time_n such_o be_v his_o humanity_n and_o facilitye_n by_o which_o he_o willing_o receive_v the_o petition_n of_o the_o faithful_a special_o when_o they_o do_v appertain_v to_o the_o corroborate_n and_o confirm_v of_o their_o faith_n even_o as_o this_o petition_n of_o the_o samaritan_n do_v b._n but_o notwithstanding_o he_o give_v commandment_n to_o his_o disciple_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o enter_v into_o the_o city_n of_o the_o samaritan_n because_o the_o time_n of_o his_o full_a glorification_n be_v not_o yet_o come_v but_o as_o the_o call_n of_o the_o gentile_n appear_v in_o the_o magi_n or_o wiseman_n and_o after_o that_o in_o the_o centurion_n and_o in_o other_o so_o in_o this_o present_a occasion_n he_o mind_v to_o manifest_v the_o call_n of_o the_o samaritan_n 8.5_o the_o call_n of_o the_o gentile_n act_n 8.5_o which_o be_v a_o certain_a kind_n of_o people_n between_o the_o ethnike_n and_o the_o jew_n &_o the_o first_o that_o receyve_v the_o gospel_n after_o the_o jew_n whereupon_o he_o tarry_v only_o two_o day_n with_o they_o whereas_o he_o continual_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o the_o jew_n 15.24_o rom._n 15.8_o mat._n 15.24_o for_o he_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o circumcision_n and_o be_v special_o send_v to_o the_o lose_a sheep_n of_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n m._n he_o will_v not_o therefore_o geve_v any_o occasion_n of_o offence_n unto_o the_o jew_n 41._o and_o many_o mo_z believe_v because_o of_o his_o own_o word_n c._n here_o this_o word_n believe_v be_v use_v in_o another_o sense_n than_o it_o be_v before_o in_o the_o nine_o and_o thyrtye_n verse_n because_o it_o do_v not_o only_o signify_v that_o they_o be_v prepare_v unto_o faith_n but_o also_o endue_v with_o a_o true_a faith_n m._n here_o therefore_o we_o see_v how_o true_a that_o be_v which_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o faith_n say_v faith_n come_v by_o hear_v 10.17_o rom._n 10.17_o and_o hear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n r._n therefore_o as_o the_o samaritan_n at_o the_o first_o beléeve_v because_o of_o the_o woman_n word_n but_o afterwards_o be_v confirm_v in_o the_o faith_n by_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n even_o so_o all_o the_o faithful_a at_o the_o first_o believe_v because_o of_o the_o apostle_n word_n and_o the_o word_n of_o the_o preacher_n but_o be_v not_o as_o yet_o confirm_v in_o the_o faith_n except_o christ_n by_o his_o voice_n speak_v to_o our_o heart_n and_o seal_v we_o by_o his_o holy_a spyrite_n which_o be_v the_o earnest_n and_o assurance_n of_o our_o heart_n for_o when_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n shall_v come_v 16.13_o joh._n 16.13_o he_o will_v lead_v we_o into_o all_o truth_n also_o paul_n plant_v 3.7_o 1_o cor._n 3.7_o apollo_n water_v but_o god_n geve_v the_o increase_n 42._o and_o say_v to_o the_o woman_n now_o we_o believe_v not_o because_o of_o thy_o say_n for_o we_o have_v hear_v he_o ourselves_o and_o know_v that_o this_o be_v even_o christ_n the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n and_o say_v to_o the_o woman_n m._n these_o thing_n be_v not_o therefore_o speak_v to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v think_v that_o the_o ministry_n of_o this_o woman_n which_o they_o have_v well_o use_v be_v contemn_v god_n forbid_v but_o rather_o to_o extol_v those_o thing_n which_o they_o have_v hear_v of_o christ_n himself_o above_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o woman_n nay_o they_o seem_v to_o know_v and_o acknowledge_v well_o enough_o the_o woman_n ministry_n by_o which_o they_o at_o the_o first_o beléeve_v because_o they_o talk_v with_o she_o then_o they_o call_v to_o mind_v her_o word_n by_o which_o she_o have_v testify_v of_o christ_n neither_o do_v they_o say_v we_o never_o beléeve_v because_o of_o thy_o word_n but_o now_o we_o believe_v not_o because_o of_o thy_o word_n bu_n as_o if_o they_o shall_v have_v say_v thou_o have_v not_o speak_v so_o large_o of_o jesus_n as_o he_o have_v deserve_v for_o now_o we_o ourselves_o have_v have_v plain_a experience_n of_o his_o divine_a power_n know_v what_o manner_n of_o personne_fw-fr he_o be_v neither_o as_n persuade_v by_o thy_o word_n only_o do_v we_o believe_v he_o to_o be_v the_o messiah_n but_o be_v convict_v rather_o by_o his_o evident_a doctrine_n we_o know_v and_o undoubted_o believe_v and_o truelye_o confess_v that_o the_o same_o jesus_n be_v not_o only_o the_o saviour_n of_o the_o jew_n but_o also_o of_o the_o whole_a world_n c._n therefore_o the_o evangelist_n here_o express_v what_o their_o faith_n be_v name_o such_o a_o faith_n as_o be_v conceive_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o so_o much_o that_o they_o may_v boast_v that_o they_o have_v the_o son_n of_o god_n to_o be_v their_o teacher_n which_o be_v he_o alone_a upon_o who_o authority_n we_o may_v safe_o stay_v ourselves_o he_o be_v not_o now_o present_a before_o our_o eye_n that_o he_o may_v talk_v with_o we_o mouth_n to_o mouth_n but_o by_o who_o soever_o we_o shall_v happen_v to_o hear_v he_o yet_o our_o faith_n can_v be_v repose_v in_o none_o but_o in_o he_o m._n the_o samaritan_n which_o speak_v here_o speak_v not_o as_o doubtful_a but_o as_o most_o assure_v and_o that_o which_o they_o believe_v with_o the_o heart_n 10.10_o rom._n 10.10_o they_o most_o constantlye_o profess_v with_o the_o mouth_n for_o with_o the_o heart_n we_o believe_v to_o righteousness_n and_o with_o the_o mouth_n we_o confess_v to_o salvation_n but_o how_o come_v they_o to_o have_v this_o certain_a knowledge_n of_o christ_n they_o say_v not_o we_o have_v see_v his_o miracle_n but_o we_o have_v hear_v he_o ourselves_o therefore_o they_o attain_v unto_o faith_n not_o by_o miracle_n but_o by_o the_o hear_n of_o the_o very_a word_n of_o god_n 8.17_o john_n 8.17_o he_o which_o be_v of_o god_n hear_v god_n word_n say_v the_o lord_n the_o unbeléeving_a and_o froward_a nation_n require_v sign_n but_o the_o elect_n do_v not_o so_o but_o by_o the_o hear_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n so_o say_v peter_n 6.68_o john_n 6.68_o lord_n to_o who_o shall_v we_o go_v thou_o have_v the_o word_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o we_o believe_v and_o confess_v that_o thou_o be_v the_o son_n of_o the_o lyve_a god_n and_o know_v that_o this_o be_v even_o christ_n our_o saviour_n c._n this_o no_o doubt_n they_o have_v by_o hear_v whereby_o we_o gather_v that_o the_o sum_n of_o the_o gospel_n within_o these_o two_o day_n be_v more_o familiarlye_o preach_v unto_o they_o by_o christ_n than_o afore_o time_n it_o have_v be_v at_o jerusalem_n bu_n also_o the_o prompt_a &_o ready_a faith_n of_o the_o samaritan_n shall_v condemn_v the_o invincible_a incredulity_n and_o obstinacye_n of_o man_n in_o our_o tyme._n for_o the_o continual_a preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n amongst_o we_o not_o two_o year_n but_o many_o year_n can_v little_a or_o nothing_o at_o all_o persuade_v many_o of_o us._n of_o the_o world_n c._n christ_n testify_v that_o the_o salvation_n which_o he_o bring_v be_v common_a to_o the_o whole_a world_n to_o the_o end_n the_o samaritan_n might_n the_o better_o understande_v that_o it_o appertain_v also_o unto_o they_o for_o he_o call_v not_o they_o to_o the_o partake_v of_o the_o grace_n of_o salvation_n as_o lawful_a heir_n but_o he_o teach_v that_o he_o come_v 2.17_o eph._n 2.17_o to_o admit_v foreigner_n into_o the_o household_n of_o god_n
name_o because_o he_o be_v natural_o beget_v of_o the_o father_n from_o everlasting_a to_o be_v the_o proper_a natural_a and_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n coequal_a with_o the_o father_n in_o all_o thing_n of_o the_o same_o essence_n glory_n and_o power_n and_o not_o his_o adopt_a son_n as_o all_o the_o saint_n be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n au._n whereupon_o it_o be_v add_v and_o make_v himself_o equal_a with_o god_n otherwise_o we_o say_v all_o our_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n ●_o math._n 6._o ●_o we_o read_v also_o that_o the_o jew_n say_v 63.16_o esa_n 63.16_o see_v thou_o be_v our_o father_n therefore_o they_o be_v not_o angerye_n because_o he_o say_v that_o god_n be_v his_o father_n but_o because_o he_o do_v so_o call_v he_o after_o a_o far_a other_o manner_n than_o man_n do_v behold_v the_o jew_n understande_v that_o which_o the_o arrian_n understand_v not_o who_o so_o confess_v christ_n to_o be_v god_n that_o they_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v he_o to_o be_v equal_a with_o his_o father_n as_o though_o there_o can_v be_v find_v any_o inequallitye_n in_o one_o simple_a essence_n of_o god_n au._n therefore_o he_o be_v in_o the_o form_n of_o god_n 2.6_o philip._n 2.6_o think_v it_o no_o robberye_n to_o be_v equal_a with_o god_n that_o be_v to_o say_v but_o he_o be_v in_o that_o in_o the_o which_o he_o be_v bear_v because_o the_o father_n have_v beget_v he_o equal_a 19_o then_o answer_v jesus_n and_o say_v unto_o they_o verylye_n very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o the_o son_n can_v do_v nothing_o of_o himself_o but_o that_o he_o see_v the_o father_n do_v for_o whatsoever_o he_o do_v that_o do_v the_o son_n also_o then_o answer_v jesus_n and_o say_v c._n that_o which_o the_o jew_n object_v though_o it_o be_v slanderous_a yet_o notwithstanding_o christ_n be_v so_o far_o from_o confute_v the_o same_o that_o he_o open_o affirm_v it_o to_o be_v true_a bu_n for_o he_o prove_v by_o strong_a argument_n that_o he_o be_v the_o natural_a son_n of_o god_n equal_a to_o the_o father_n in_o all_o thing_n m._n affirm_v that_o his_o work_n be_v none_o of_o he_o but_o the_o work_n of_o his_o father_n and_o that_o therefore_o the_o sabbath_n be_v not_o break_v by_o they_o neither_o do_v he_o simp_o affirm_v this_o but_o that_o which_o be_v more_o namely_o that_o it_o can_v be_v that_o the_o son_n shall_v do_v any_o thing_n that_o the_o father_n do_v not_o c._n and_o first_o of_o all_o he_o stand_v upon_o this_o point_n that_o the_o same_o be_v a_o divine_a work_n which_o the_o jew_n find_v fault_n withal_o to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v know_v that_o they_o must_v contend_v with_o god_n if_o so_o be_v they_o condemn_v that_o which_o of_o necessity_n must_v be_v ascribe_v unto_o he_o 6.38_o john_n 6.38_o b._n and_o now_o these_o word_n the_o son_n can_v do_v nothing_o of_o himself_o i_o seek_v not_o my_o own_o will_n also_o if_o i_o bear_v witness_n of_o myself_o my_o witness_n be_v not_o true_a be_v speak_v by_o imitation_n hitherto_o the_o lord_n imitate_v the_o jew_n who_o think_v he_o not_o to_o be_v all_o one_o with_o the_o father_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o be_v of_o some_o substance_n with_o the_o father_n &_o make_v man_n after_o the_o will_n of_o his_o father_n insomuch_o that_o he_o neither_o think_v nor_o do_v any_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o both_o the_o will_n and_o work_v of_o his_o father_n also_o this_o place_n the_o arrian_n have_v abuse_v seek_v to_o prove_v hereby_o that_o the_o son_n be_v less_o than_o the_o father_n but_o there_o be_v no_o mention_v here_o make_v of_o the_o bare_a divinity_n of_o christ_n neither_o do_v that_o which_o follow_v symplye_o belong_v to_o the_o eternal_a word_n of_o god_n but_o do_v only_o belong_v to_o the_o son_n of_o god_n in_o that_o he_o be_v manifest_v in_o the_o flesh_n and_o his_o purpose_n be_v to_o declare_v by_o these_o word_n that_o they_o do_v great_o err_v which_o think_v that_o they_o have_v to_o do_v with_o a_o mortal_a man_n when_o they_o accuse_v christ_n concern_v divine_a work_n for_o this_o cause_n he_o so_o vehement_o affirm_v that_o he_o and_o his_o father_n wrought_v this_o work_n joint_o together_o bu_n and_o lest_o any_o man_n shall_v imagine_v any_o other_o infirmity_n or_o imbecility_n in_o the_o son_n he_o add_v by_o interpretation_n say_v for_o whatsoever_o he_o do_v that_o do_v the_o son_n also_o to_o the_o end_n that_o nothing_o may_v be_v leave_v to_o the_o work_a father_n which_o the_o son_n in_o like_a manner_n work_v not_o m._n this_o place_n ought_v well_o to_o be_v weigh_v and_o consider_v of_o we_o to_o this_o end_n that_o we_o may_v hear_v and_o way_n whatsoever_o our_o saviour_n christ_n have_v say_v or_o do_v not_o as_o the_o word_n and_o deed_n of_o a_o man_n but_o as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o father_n that_o we_o may_v know_v that_o the_o father_n do_v speak_v and_o work_v in_o christ_n 20._o for_o the_o father_n love_v the_o son_n and_o show_v he_o all_o thing_n that_o he_o himself_o do_v and_o he_o will_v show_v he_o great_a thing_n than_o these_o because_o you_o shall_v marvel_v for_o the_o father_n love_v m._n he_o speak_v after_o the_o manner_n of_o man_n of_o divine_a matter_n the_o which_o notwithstanding_o can_v never_o be_v proper_o and_o ful_o set_v forth_o by_o humane_a thing_n for_o who_o be_v so_o senseless_a that_o he_o know_v not_o how_o weak_a imperfect_a and_o corrupt_v fatherlye_o love_n be_v in_o humane_a nature_n nor_o like_v in_o any_o point_n almost_o to_o that_o divine_a love_n which_o god_n bear_v toward_o his_o son_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o have_v take_v a_o argument_n from_o the_o same_o of_o his_o father_n love_n towards_o he_o even_o as_o in_o another_o place_n speak_v of_o the_o ungodly_a 11.13_o luk._n 11.13_o say_v if_o you_o be_v evyll_n know_v how_o to_o geve_v good_a thing_n unto_o your_o child_n how_o much_o more_o shall_v your_o heavenlye_a father_n geve_v his_o good_a spirit_n to_o those_o that_o ask_v the_o same_o c._n but_o christ_n speak_v here_o as_o a_o mediator_n lest_o any_o man_n shall_v refer_v it_o to_o that_o internal_a love_n of_o the_o divinitye_n for_o it_o agree_v very_o well_o that_o christ_n have_v take_v upon_o he_o our_o flesh_n shall_v be_v love_v of_o his_o father_n yea_o we_o know_v that_o he_o be_v discever_v as_o well_o from_o angel_n as_o from_o man_n by_o this_o notable_a title_n this_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n etc._n etc._n for_o we_o know_v that_o christ_n 17.5_o mat._n 3.17_o mat._n 17.5_o in_o who_o the_o whole_a love_n of_o god_n shall_v rest_v be_v elect_v that_o from_o thence_o as_o from_o a_o flow_a well_o it_o may_v flow_v unto_o us._n for_o christ_n be_v love_v of_o the_o father_n as_o he_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n he_o teach_v that_o this_o love_n be_v the_o cause_n why_o the_o father_n bring_v all_o thing_n to_o pass_v by_o his_o hand_n christ_n god_n love_n come_v to_o we_o by_o christ_n for_o when_o he_o say_v here_o that_o the_o father_n show_v all_o thing_n unto_o he_o he_o mean_v that_o he_o do_v communicate_v all_o thing_n with_o he_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v as_o the_o father_n have_v make_v i_o partaker_n of_o his_o mind_n so_o also_o he_o have_v pour_v upon_o i_o his_o power_n that_o in_o my_o work_n the_o glory_n of_o god_n may_v shine_v yea_o &_o to_o the_o end_n that_o man_n may_v seek_v for_o no_o divine_a thing_n which_o they_o shall_v not_o find_v in_o i_o and_o verylye_o without_o christ_n god_n power_n shall_v be_v seek_v in_o vain_a cyr._n therefore_o the_o father_n show_v unto_o the_o son_n those_o thing_n which_o he_o do_v not_o as_o paint_a or_o write_v in_o table_n or_o as_o teach_v he_o be_v ignorant_a for_o the_o son_n know_v all_o thing_n as_o god_n but_o so_o express_v himself_o whole_o in_o the_o nature_n of_o his_o son_n that_o whatsoever_o he_o have_v in_o himself_o he_o show_v the_o same_o in_o his_o son_n therefore_o it_o be_v say_v 11.27_o mat._n 11.27_o no_o man_n know_v the_o father_n but_o the_o son_n and_o no_o man_n know_v the_o son_n but_o the_o father_n r._n therefore_o if_o thou_o will_v know_v and_o understande_v the_o secret_n of_o the_o father_n make_v haste_n to_o the_o son_n 1.3_o heb._n 1.3_o who_o be_v the_o lyvelye_a and_o express_a image_n of_o the_o father_n for_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n be_v unsearchable_a and_o his_o way_n can_v not_o be_v find_v out_o but_o yet_o in_o christ_n 3●_n rom._n 11_o 3●_n and_o by_o christ_n his_o judgement_n be_v know_v and_o his_o way_n manifest_a unto_o us._n and_o he_o will_v show_v he_o great_a thing_n
only_o to_o the_o son_n of_o god_n as_o though_o christ_n ascend_v into_o heaven_n have_v utterlye_o forsake_v this_o office_n and_o ought_v not_o rather_o to_o reign_v untyll_o he_o have_v put_v all_o his_o enemy_n under_o his_o foot_n m._n if_o therefore_o christ_n be_v appoint_v of_o the_o father_n 110.1_o psal_n 110.1_o to_o be_v the_o judge_n of_o all_o man_n 15.25_o 1._o cor._n 15.25_o he_o must_v needs_o be_v most_o wise_a and_o such_o a_o one_o as_o no_o man_n can_v deceyve_v hereupon_o he_o be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o knower_n of_o secréete_n and_o a_o searcher_n of_o heart_n m._n that_o we_o have_v get_v such_o a_o judge_n may_v learn_v to_o walk_v before_o he_o all_o the_o day_n of_o our_o life_n in_o sinceritye_n of_o the_o heart_n even_o as_o if_o we_o be_v always_o before_o his_o face_n and_o in_o his_o sight_n 23._o because_o that_o all_o man_n shall_v honour_v the_o son_n even_o as_o they_o honour_v the_o father_n he_o that_o honour_v not_o the_o son_n the_o same_o honour_v not_o the_o father_n which_o have_v send_v he_o because_o that_o all_o man_n r._n as_o the_o father_n have_v give_v all_o power_n of_o judgement_n to_o the_o son_n so_o he_o will_v be_v honour_v in_o the_o person_n of_o his_o son_n c._n for_o he_o do_v not_o so_o reign_v in_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n as_o though_o he_o himself_o live_v idelye_o in_o heaven_n as_o slothful_a king_n be_v wont_a to_o do_v but_o because_o he_o may_v declare_v his_o mighty_a power_n &_o presence_n in_o christ_n for_o what_o other_o thing_n signify_v these_o word_n because_o that_o all_o man_n shall_v honour_v the_o son_n then_o that_o the_o father_n will_v be_v know_v and_o woorship_v in_o the_o son_n christ_n god_n the_o father_n in_o christ_n therefore_o it_o be_v our_o part_n to_o seek_v god_n the_o father_n in_o christ_n there_o to_o behold_v his_o power_n and_o there_o to_o worship_v he_o for_o the_o father_n have_v whole_o pour_v himself_o into_o the_o son_n to_o what_o end_n sure_o to_o the_o end_n that_o all_o man_n may_v honour_v the_o son_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o whosoever_o will_v attain_v to_o salvation_n in_o god_n worship_n god_n and_o believe_v in_o god_n he_o may_v do_v this_o by_o his_o son_n christ_n for_o no_o man_n can_v obtain_v salvation_n in_o god_n without_o christ_n christ_n salvation_n only_a in_o christ_n because_o god_n save_v health_n be_v place_v whole_o in_o christ_n in_o like_a manner_n no_o man_n can_v worship_n god_n but_o by_o christ_n because_o christ_n be_v the_o wisdom_n and_o power_n of_o god_n moreover_o 14.9_o john_n 10.9_o john_n 14.9_o no_o man_n can_v believe_v in_o god_n but_o by_o christ_n because_o christ_n be_v the_o door_n the_o way_n the_o truth_n &_o the_o life_n wherefore_o he_o that_o honour_v not_o the_o son_n the_o same_o honour_v not_o the_o father_n c._n all_o man_n will_v confess_v that_o god_n ought_v to_o be_v worship_v insomuch_o that_o we_o have_v this_o feel_v and_o understand_v ingraff_v in_o we_o by_o nature_n there_o be_v no_o man_n that_o dare_v deny_v this_o honour_n unto_o god_n yet_o nevertheless_o man_n mind_n err_v and_o go_v astray_o in_o seek_v after_o god_n hereupon_o come_v so_o many_o false_a god_n hereuppon_o come_v such_o abominable_a idolatry_n therefore_o we_o shall_v find_v the_o true_a god_n no_o where_o else_o then_o in_o christ_n neither_o shall_v we_o otherwise_o right_o worship_v he_o then_o in_o kiss_v his_o dear_a son_n 2.12_o psal_n 2.12_o as_o the_o prophet_n david_n teach_v bu_n therefore_o if_o any_o man_n will_v worship_v the_o father_n without_o the_o son_n as_o do_v the_o jew_n and_o turk_n as_o though_o he_o have_v not_o a_o son_n like_a and_o coequal_a with_o he_o in_o all_o thing_n he_o miss_v the_o worship_n of_o the_o father_n for_o he_o can_v be_v a_o father_n which_o want_v a_o son_n r._n we_o must_v note_v therefore_o that_o the_o name_n of_o god_n when_o it_o be_v separate_v from_o christ_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o vain_a fantasy_n and_o imagination_n wherefore_o whosoever_o he_o be_v that_o desire_v to_o have_v his_o worship_n acceptable_a unto_o the_o true_a god_n let_v he_o not_o depart_v from_o christ_n r._n for_o whosoever_o reject_v christ_n by_o infidelity_n reject_v god_n the_o ethnic_n also_o affirm_v that_o he_o worship_v god_n the_o creator_n of_o heaven_n &_o earth_n the_o jew_n also_o say_v the_o like_a of_o himself_o and_o the_o wicked_a man_n which_o be_v a_o christian_n only_o in_o name_n brag_v of_o the_o same_o but_o because_o christ_n to_o the_o ethnic_n be_v foolishness_n to_o the_o jew_n a_o offence_n and_o to_o the_o wicked_a contempt_n 23._o 1._o cor._n 1_o 23._o none_o of_o they_o do_v true_o believe_v in_o god_n neither_o true_o worship_n god_n for_o he_o will_v not_o be_v worship_v but_o by_o jesus_n christ_n c._n whereupon_o the_o evangelist_n saint_n john_n say_v in_o his_o epistle_n 2.22_o 1._o joh._n 2.22_o the_o same_o be_v antechriste_n which_o deni_v the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n and_o the_o apostle_n paul_n write_v that_o it_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n that_o every_o tongue_n shall_v confess_v that_o the_o lord_n be_v jesus_n christ_n to_o the_o glory_n god_n the_o father_n 2.11_o philip._n 2.11_o c._n neither_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o father_n otherwise_o under_o the_o law_n for_o although_o they_o have_v a_o obscure_a sight_n of_o christ_n under_o shadow_n yet_o notwithstanding_o god_n never_o reveal_v himself_o without_o christ_n but_o now_o so_o soon_o as_o christ_n be_v exhibit_v in_o the_o flesh_n and_o be_v appoint_v to_o be_v our_o king_n all_o the_o world_n ought_v to_o have_v submit_v itself_o unto_o he_o as_o unto_o god_n the_o father_n for_o see_v the_o father_n have_v command_v he_o to_o sit_v on_o his_o right_a hand_n whatsoever_o he_o be_v that_o imagine_v a_o god_n without_o christ_n he_o maym_v one_o half_a of_o he_o r._n but_o what_o honour_n be_v that_o which_o appertain_v to_o the_o son_n it_o follow_v 24._o very_o verylye_n i_o say_v unto_o you_o he_z that_o hear_v my_o word_n and_o beeleeve_v on_o he_o that_o send_v i_o have_v everlasting_a life_n and_o shall_v not_o come_v into_o judgement_n but_o be_v escape_v from_o death_n to_o life_n very_o very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o c._n here_o be_v express_v what_o manner_n of_o honour_n be_v require_v lest_o any_o man_n shall_v think_v that_o the_o same_o consist_v in_o some_o external_a right_a only_a or_o in_o vain_a ceremony_n r._n for_o christ_n seek_v not_o external_a honour_n which_o superstitious_a man_n geve_v unto_o he_o but_o he_o seek_v for_o faith_n because_o to_o believe_v be_v to_o geve_v the_o great_a honour_n that_o may_v be_v to_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n christ_n the_o gospel_n be_v the_o the_o sceptre_n of_o christ_n c._n whereupon_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v as_o a_o sceptre_n unto_o christ_n by_o which_o he_o govern_v the_o faithful_a who_o the_o father_n have_v make_v subject_a unto_o he_o and_o this_o definition_n be_v first_o of_o all_o worthy_a to_o be_v note_v nothing_o be_v more_o usual_a and_o common_a than_o the_o false_a profession_n of_o christianisme_n for_o the_o papist_n which_o be_v the_o most_o swear_a enemy_n unto_o christ_n do_v notwithstanding_o too_o impudent_o brag_v and_o boast_v of_o his_o name_n but_o here_o christ_n require_v of_o we_o no_o other_o honour_n then_o that_o we_o shall_v obey_v his_o gospel_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o what_o honour_n soever_o hipocrit_n geve_v unto_o christ_n it_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o judas_n kiss_n how_o often_o time_n soever_o they_o call_v he_o a_o king_n they_o do_v nothing_o but_o spoil_v he_o of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o power_n so_o long_o as_o they_o believe_v not_o the_o gospel_n m._n therefore_o he_o which_o hear_v not_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v to_o say_v which_o receive_v it_o not_o as_o the_o word_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n send_v into_o this_o world_n of_o the_o father_n for_o our_o salvation_n he_o it_o be_v which_o great_o dishonour_v the_o son_n and_o the_o father_n 4.44_o joh._n 4.44_o he_o say_v that_o a_o prophet_n be_v not_o without_o honour_n save_v in_o his_o own_o country_n it_o be_v a_o discredit_v to_o the_o prophet_n send_v of_o god_n if_o so_o be_v his_o word_n be_v not_o beléeve_v and_o in_o another_o place_n this_o discredit_n be_v say_v to_o be_v unbelief_n the_o which_o happen_v to_o the_o son_n of_o god_n among_o the_o nazarite_n r._n moreover_o 6.6_o mar._n 6.6_o because_o to_o believe_v seem_v to_o many_o to_o be_v a_o thing_n so_o easy_a in_o somuch_o that_o they_o think_v they_o believe_v when_o they_o only_o hear_v this_o name_n think_v that_o to_o believe_v be_v
one_o as_o i_o be_v not_o before_o he_o give_v testimony_n of_o i_o that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o i_o shall_v not_o have_v be_v god_n except_o he_o have_v say_v that_o i_o be_o the_o son_n of_o god_n for_o i_o be_o that_o natural_o that_o which_o he_o say_v i_o be_v but_o for_o your_o sake_n rather_o do_v i_o bring_v his_o testimony_n for_o because_o he_o be_v of_o great_a auctoritye_n among_o you_o i_o think_v that_o you_o will_v the_o more_o ready_o have_v beléeve_v his_o word_n and_o so_o through_o faith_n in_o i_o have_v obtain_v everlasting_a life_n c._n therefore_o christ_n here_o declare_v that_o he_o have_v not_o so_o much_o respect_n unto_o himself_o as_o he_o have_v to_o profit_v man_n when_o he_o raise_v up_o preacher_n of_o his_o gospel_n by_o who_o he_o may_v certify_v we_o of_o his_o will_n in_o the_o which_o also_o his_o wonderful_a goodness_n do_v great_o shine_v in_o that_o he_o seek_v to_o frame_v all_o thing_n to_o our_o salvation_n wherefore_o we_o also_o must_v endeavour_n ourselves_o to_o see_v that_o he_o be_v not_o careful_a in_o vain_a for_o our_o soul_n health_n m._n christ_n say_v not_o i_o speak_v these_o thing_n to_o make_v you_o ashamed_a and_o to_o defend_v my_o innocencye_n against_o your_o blasphemy_n the_o which_o undoubtedlye_o of_o all_o other_o he_o may_v most_o just_o have_v speak_v and_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o do_v speak_v may_v of_o themselves_o have_v make_v they_o ashamed_a he_o rather_o desire_v to_o speak_v that_o which_o both_o only_o appertain_v to_o he_o and_o also_o ought_v just_o to_o have_v take_v from_o they_o all_o outrageous_a fury_n and_o desire_n to_o destroy_v he_o for_o what_o man_n will_v seek_v his_o destruction_n who_o he_o know_v to_o be_v so_o friendly_a unto_o he_o that_o he_o seek_v nothing_o more_o than_o his_o profit_n and_o safety_n let_v this_o be_v a_o example_n for_o all_o the_o minister_n of_o christ_n to_o follow_v that_o in_o speak_v they_o neither_o seek_v their_o own_o glory_n glory_n minister_n ought_v not_o to_o seek_v their_o own_o glory_n or_o revenge_n but_o the_o salvation_n of_o their_o hearer_n if_o this_o mind_n be_v in_o all_o those_o that_o take_v upon_o they_o the_o office_n of_o teach_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n at_o this_o day_n shall_v be_v free_a from_o a_o number_n of_o contention_n and_o perrille_n and_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o they_o shall_v practice_v this_o not_o only_o in_o word_n as_o a_o number_n of_o hypocrite_n do_v but_o also_o in_o their_o conversation_n and_o fatherly_a affection_n toward_o the_o faithful_a servant_n of_o christ_n and_o also_o to_o instruct_v those_o that_o resist_v the_o truth_n with_o all_o méekenesse_n if_o it_o may_v please_v god_n at_o any_o time_n to_o geve_v they_o repentance_n that_o they_o may_v be_v convert_v and_o believe_v m._n furthermore_o we_o must_v yet_o a_o little_a far_o discuss_v these_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n for_o they_o do_v nothing_o derogate_v from_o the_o testimony_n of_o john_n which_o he_o bear_v to_o the_o truth_n but_o christ_n say_v that_o he_o have_v no_o need_n of_o man_n testimony_n see_v he_o have_v the_o testimony_n of_o his_o father_n which_o far_o excel_v all_o other_o whereupon_o he_o say_v not_o and_o you_o shall_v not_o receyve_v any_o man_n testimony_n concern_v i_o for_o that_o which_o john_n and_o which_o the_o apostle_n after_o john_n do_v testify_v concern_v the_o truth_n be_v so_o direct_v by_o god_n to_o this_o end_n that_o all_o mankind_n may_v be_v bring_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o be_v save_v so_o that_o they_o have_v nothing_o here_o for_o their_o purpose_n who_o to_o cloak_n their_o unbeléefe_n do_v derogate_v from_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o prophet_n apostle_n and_o evangelist_n under_o this_o pretence_n that_o the_o prophet_n apostle_n and_o evangelist_n be_v man_n and_o that_o christ_n himself_o do_v not_o allow_v the_o testimony_n of_o man_n concern_v he_o these_o ungodlye_a man_n do_v not_o consider_v what_o be_v the_o use_n of_o those_o testimony_n which_o be_v give_v to_o the_o truth_n by_o the_o instinct_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o man_n 35._o he_o be_v a_o burn_a and_o a_o shine_a light_n and_o you_o will_v for_o a_o season_n have_v reioyse_v in_o his_o light_n he_o be_v a_o burn_a bu_n lest_o any_o man_n shall_v think_v that_o this_o testimony_n of_o john_n be_v elevate_v and_o depress_v by_o these_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n he_o commend_v john_n himself_o to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v make_v his_o testimony_n commendable_a also_o r._n for_o he_o be_v not_o that_o true_a light_n yet_o notwithstanding_o 1.8_o john_n 1.8_o he_o be_v a_o bright_a candle_n geve_v testimony_n concern_v the_o true_a light_n he_o be_v a_o famous_a preacher_n of_o the_o truth_n be_v zealous_a in_o faith_n and_o truth_n mighty_o seek_v to_o advance_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o gospel_n m._n therefore_o by_o this_o metaphorical_a speech_n he_o great_o praise_v and_o commend_v the_o holiness_n of_o john_n and_o therewith_o all_o also_o declare_v what_o be_v his_o office_n for_o not_o only_o this_o belong_v to_o a_o burn_a light_n that_o the_o same_o shall_v be_v bright_a and_o clear_a of_o itself_o but_o also_o that_o it_o shall_v with_o the_o brightness_n of_o the_o same_o illuminate_v all_o that_o be_v round_o about_o it_o so_o candle_n john_n baptist_n a_o candle_n it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a for_o saint_n john_n to_o be_v a_o holy_a man_n himself_o but_o this_o also_o speacial_o appertain_v to_o his_o office_n to_o bring_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o israelite_n by_o the_o preach_n of_o repentance_n and_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o by_o geve_a testimony_n to_o christ_n to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n light_n minister_n ought_v to_o be_v burn_a light_n after_o this_o manner_n a_o faithful_a minister_n of_o christ_n ought_v to_o be_v a_o burn_a candle_n which_o be_v lighten_v in_o a_o dark_a place_n to_o the_o end_n that_o they_o which_o be_v in_o the_o same_o may_v see_v not_o only_o this_o be_v require_v that_o the_o minister_n be_v a_o honest_a and_o innocent_a man_n but_o also_o that_o he_o be_v such_o a_o one_o as_o will_v show_v forth_o the_o light_n which_o he_o have_v receyve_v to_o those_o which_o be_v commit_v to_o his_o charge_n 8.16_o luk._n 8.16_o so_o say_v our_o savioure_n christ_n no_o man_n light_v a_o candle_n put_v the_o same_o under_o a_o bushel_n but_o if_o the_o light_n be_v darkness_n how_o great_a be_v the_o darkness_n c._o moreover_o whereas_o our_o savioure_n call_v john_n a_o burn_v light_n he_o do_v thereby_o the_o more_o reprove_v the_o ingratitude_n of_o the_o jew_n for_o it_o follow_v that_o they_o be_v willing_o blind_a when_o they_o refuse_v the_o candle_n of_o god_n which_o be_v set_v before_o their_o eye_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v god_n will_v not_o have_v you_o to_o err_v for_o he_o appoint_v john_n to_o be_v a_o candle_n that_o by_o his_o light_n he_o may_v direct_v you_o in_o the_o right_a way_n therefore_o in_o that_o you_o do_v not_o know_v i_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n your_o voluntary_a error_n be_v the_o cause_n thereof_o a._n euenso_fw-la they_o which_o at_o this_o day_n be_v willing_o blind_a in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n have_v no_o excuse_n for_o the_o lord_n seek_v by_o the_o preachinge_a of_o his_o word_n 5.14_o mat._n 5.14_o to_o bring_v man_n out_o of_o darkness_n into_o light_n in_o consideration_n whereof_o he_o call_v his_o apostle_n the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n that_o the_o darkness_n of_o ignorance_n be_v drive_v away_o the_o heart_n of_o mortal_a man_n may_v be_v illuminate_v with_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o true_a piety_n and_o you_o will_v for_o a_o season_n have_v reioyse_v c._n now_o follow_v the_o other_o reproach_n in_o that_o they_o do_v not_o only_o shut_v their_o eye_n against_o the_o truth_n which_o be_v offer_v to_o they_o but_o also_o seek_v all_o the_o mean_n they_o can_v by_o abuse_v the_o same_o to_o oppress_v christ_n for_o in_o that_o they_o be_v so_o ready_o to_o extol_v john_n above_o his_o proper_a degree_n that_o proceed_v of_o a_o evyll_n and_o wicked_a purpose_n that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n may_v have_v no_o place_n christ_n very_o notable_o compare_v this_o wicked_a abuse_n of_o the_o heavenlye_a light_n to_o lasciviousness_n even_o as_o if_o the_o good_a man_n of_o the_o house_n shall_v light_v a_o candle_n in_o the_o night_n for_o his_o servant_n to_o do_v that_o which_o he_o have_v command_v they_o to_o do_v and_o they_o then_o to_o use_v the_o same_o to_o banquet_v and_o to_o wantonness_n by_o this_o place_n we_o be_v admonish_v not_o to_o abuse_v godly_a teacher_n who_o
god_n have_v appoint_v to_o guide_v we_o in_o the_o right_a way_n to_o wander_v at_o our_o leisure_n whether_o we_o lust_n bu_n for_o many_o be_v well_o affect_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o preach_v for_o the_o love_n of_o novelty_n but_o within_o a_o while_n after_o do_v forsake_v the_o gospel_n again_o follow_v pleasure_n and_o corrupt_a affection_n which_o they_o esteem_v more_o than_o the_o love_n of_o godliness_n for_o a_o season_n c._n by_o these_o word_n he_o reprove_v their_o folishnesse_n because_o they_o think_v that_o the_o eternal_a light_n of_o god_n may_v be_v extinguish_v by_o vain_a way_n wardness_n and_o unconstant_a folly_n even_o so_o at_o this_o day_n the_o papist_n abuse_v all_o those_o godly_a teacher_n and_o doctor_n which_o the_o lord_n have_v give_v to_o his_o church_n as_o bright_a candelle_n as_o though_o they_o go_v about_o to_o dazzle_v their_o eye_n by_o behold_v the_o light_n and_o they_o do_v not_o only_o abuse_v the_o candelle_n to_o obscure_v the_o light_n but_o they_o do_v also_o oftentimes_o rejoice_v in_o darkness_n 36._o but_o i_o have_v great_a wytnesse_n than_o the_o witness_n of_o john_n for_o the_o work_n which_o the_o father_n have_v give_v i_o to_o finish_v the_o same_o work_n that_o i_o do_v bear_v witness_n of_o i_o that_o the_o father_n have_v send_v i_o but_o i_o have_v great_a witness_n c._n after_o he_o have_v show_v in_o the_o person_n of_o john_n that_o the_o jew_n have_v wicked_o corrupt_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n now_o secondlye_o he_o repeat_v that_o which_o he_o have_v speak_v as_o that_o he_o have_v no_o need_n of_o the_o testimony_n of_o man_n his_o own_o witness_n be_v sufficient_a for_o himself_o howbeit_o because_o he_o see_v that_o he_o be_v despise_v he_o cit_v they_o according_a to_o his_o manner_n before_o his_o father_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v bu_n thus_o far_o forth_o you_o have_v hear_v great_a thing_n but_o you_o shall_v hear_v great_a thing_n you_o have_v johns_n testimony_n concern_v i_o but_o now_o behold_v a_o great_a testimony_n name_o the_o testimony_n of_o my_o work_n for_o there_o can_v not_o be_v a_o more_o certain_a testimony_n than_o the_o deed_n themselves_o the_o which_o i_o do_v not_o in_o my_o own_o name_n but_o in_o my_o father_n name_n m._n let_v we_o note_v here_o how_o circumspectlye_o and_o wiselye_o he_o say_v not_o i_o have_v a_o testimony_n much_o more_o certain_a and_o true_a than_o the_o testimony_n of_o john_n but_o he_o say_v great_a than_o the_o testimony_n of_o john_n lest_o he_o may_v so_o extol_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o father_n concern_v himself_o that_o the_o testimony_n of_o john_n thereby_o shall_v be_v quite_o discredit_v for_o whatsoever_o john_n do_v testify_v concern_v christ_n the_o same_o be_v of_o god_n neither_o be_v it_o any_o whit_n contrary_a from_o that_o which_o the_o father_n by_o his_o work_n testify_v of_o he_o but_o if_o you_o compare_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o work_n of_o christ_n which_o he_o have_v receyve_v of_o the_o father_n with_o the_o testimony_n of_o john_n you_o shall_v find_v that_o it_o be_v much_o more_o excellent_a and_o notable_a for_o as_o that_o lucifer_n or_o morning_n star_n though_o it_o be_v a_o true_a testimony_n of_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o sun_n yet_o notwithstanding_o be_v inferior_a and_o nothing_o so_o evident_a as_o the_o sun_n beam_n itself_o which_v shine_v throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n â–ª_o even_o so_o john_n though_o his_o testimony_n be_v true_a concern_v christ_n yet_o notwithstanding_o it_o be_v far_o inferior_a &_o more_o obscure_a than_o the_o bright_a show_n of_o christ_n work_n for_o the_o work_n which_o the_o father_n have_v give_v i_o r._n the_o second_o thing_n whereby_o christ_n prove_v that_o he_o be_v send_v of_o the_o father_n be_v work_n or_o miracle_n m_o the_o use_n whereof_o be_v here_o declare_v unto_o we_o when_o christ_n say_v they_o testify_v of_o i_o therefore_o they_o be_v not_o dumb_a sign_n but_o lyvelye_a sign_n and_o therefore_o not_o simple_o to_o be_v behold_v but_o effectual_o to_o be_v hear_v according_a to_o this_o place_n the_o heaven_n declare_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n these_o speak_v not_o and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o their_o sound_n have_v go_v forth_o into_o all_o land_n and_o their_o word_n into_o the_o utmost_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n 19.1_o psal_n 19.1_o a._n even_o so_o the_o wonderful_a work_n of_o christ_n though_o they_o seem_v to_o be_v dumb_a yet_o notwithstanding_o most_o evidentlye_o they_o set_v forth_o his_o mighty_a virtue_n and_o power_n but_o to_o they_o to_o who_o he_o have_v give_v ear_n to_o hear_v m._n even_o as_o appear_v in_o nicodemus_n who_o be_v move_v by_o the_o power_n and_o testimony_n of_o christ_n work_n 3._o john_n 3._o acknowledge_v that_o christ_n be_v come_v a_o teacher_n send_v from_o god_n for_o as_o a_o good_a tree_n be_v know_v by_o his_o good_a fruit_n even_o so_o the_o lord_n jesus_n have_v sufficient_o by_o his_o work_n prove_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n 10.25_o john_n 10.25_o r._n the_o work_v say_v he_o which_o i_o do_v in_o my_o father_n name_n they_o bear_v witness_n of_o i_o c._n it_o may_v here_o be_v demand_v whether_o miracle_n be_v sufficient_a enough_o to_o prove_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n question_v when_o as_o the_o prophet_n have_v do_v the_o like_a m._n furthermore_o neither_o the_o jew_n nor_o the_o turk_n do_v deny_v the_o miracle_n of_o christ_n but_o yet_o neither_o of_o they_o do_v acknowledge_v the_o testimony_n whereof_o the_o lord_n here_o make_v mention_v answer_v answer_v c._n we_o answer_v those_o sign_n and_o miracle_n which_o the_o lord_n wrought_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o prophet_n go_v not_o beyond_o that_o end_n for_o the_o which_o they_o be_v appoint_v to_o be_v wrought_v which_o be_v that_o they_o may_v declare_v they_o to_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o god_n who_o otherwise_o can_v have_v have_v neither_o authority_n nor_o credit_n but_o god_n mean_v more_o high_o to_o extol_v his_o son_n and_o this_o purpose_n of_o god_n in_o miracle_n must_v be_v take_v for_o the_o end_n and_o scope_n therefore_o if_o the_o jew_n through_o malice_n have_v not_o willing_o shut_v their_o eye_n the_o virtue_n of_o christ_n sign_n may_v sufficient_o have_v declare_v who_o and_o what_o manner_n of_o person_n he_o be_v even_o as_o he_o himself_o say_v if_o i_o have_v not_o do_v among_o they_o the_o work_n which_o no_o other_o man_n have_v do_v 15.24_o iho._n 15.24_o they_o have_v no_o sin_n but_o now_o they_o have_v see_v and_o hate_v not_o only_o i_o but_o also_o my_o father_n m._n as_o touch_v the_o turk_n although_o after_o a_o sort_n they_o do_v acknowledge_v some_o divine_a power_n to_o be_v in_o the_o miracle_n of_o christ_n yet_o notwithstanding_o they_o will_v in_o no_o wise_n acknowledge_v he_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v utter_o blind_v and_o deceive_v by_o the_o false_a prophet_n mahomet_n god_n the_o turk_n deny_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n they_o say_v that_o god_n can_v have_v a_o son_n see_v he_o have_v not_o a_o wife_n so_o foolish_a and_o blind_a they_o be_v that_o they_o will_v not_o acknowledge_v the_o image_n of_o the_o fatherly_a goodness_n &_o power_n in_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o which_o notwithstanding_o his_o work_n have_v make_v he_o more_o evident_a and_o clear_a than_o the_o son_n 37._o and_o the_o father_n himself_o which_o have_v send_v i_o have_v bear_v witness_n of_o i_o you_o have_v not_o hear_v his_o voice_n at_o any_o time_n nor_o see_v his_o shape_n and_o the_o father_n himself_o which_o have_v send_v i_o bu_n some_o restrain_v this_o to_o the_o voice_n which_o be_v hear_v in_o the_o baptism_n of_o christ_n but_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v far_o extend_v c._n for_o in_o the_o preterperfect_a tense_n or_o time_n pass_v he_o say_v the_o father_n have_v testify_v to_o declare_v that_o he_o come_v not_o forth_o unknown_a because_o aforetime_o in_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n the_o father_n have_v make_v he_o manifest_a by_o token_n that_o he_o may_v bring_v his_o note_n &_o mark_n with_o he_o whereby_o he_o may_v be_v know_v for_o god_n do_v testify_v of_o his_o son_n so_o often_o as_o he_o promise_v salvation_n to_o his_o people_n the_o jew_n or_o the_o full_a restore_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o israel_n so_o it_o become_v the_o jew_n to_o have_v the_o perpetual_a substance_n of_o christ_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n before_o he_o shall_v be_v manifest_v in_o the_o flesh_n whereas_o they_o contemn_v he_o he_o be_v present_a and_o do_v reject_v he_o thereby_o they_o do_v manifest_o declare_v that_o they_o have_v no_o taste_n of_o the_o law_n the_o which_o also_o
christ_n cast_v in_o their_o tooth_n and_o yet_o they_o brag_v of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o law_n even_o as_o if_o they_o have_v come_v out_o of_o god_n own_o bosom_n you_o have_v not_o hear_v his_o voice_n m._n because_o the_o jew_n challenge_v to_o themselves_o a_o certain_a singular_a and_o peculiar_a knoweldge_n of_o god_n above_o all_o other_o nation_n that_o be_v in_o the_o world_n because_o their_o forefather_n have_v hear_v his_o voice_n and_o because_o moses_n have_v talk_v with_o he_o face_n to_o face_n and_o have_v receyve_v the_o law_n from_o his_o mouth_n and_o for_o the_o opinion_n which_o they_o have_v conceyve_v of_o these_o man_n they_o do_v not_o only_o despise_v all_o other_o nation_n in_o respect_n of_o themselves_o but_o also_o careless_o reject_v the_o doctrine_n and_o admonition_n boath_n of_o john_n and_o also_o of_o christ_n the_o lord_n by_o these_o word_n most_o apt_o take_v away_o the_o opinion_n of_o divine_a knowledge_n which_o they_o think_v they_o have_v and_o plainelye_o affirm_v that_o they_o be_v nothing_o but_o plain_a atheist_n that_o be_v to_o say_v without_o mind_n and_o feel_v of_o god_n and_o have_v no_o fellowship_n at_o all_o with_o he_o c._n for_o here_o be_v three_o metophoricall_a kind_n of_o speech_n by_o which_o he_o mean_v to_o teach_v that_o they_o be_v far_o from_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n for_o as_o man_n make_v themselves_o know_v by_o continuance_n and_o by_o word_n even_o so_o god_n send_v forth_o his_o voice_n unto_o we_o by_o the_o voice_n of_o his_o prophet_n and_o have_v in_o the_o sacrament_n as_o it_o be_v take_v upon_o he_o a_o visible_a form_n that_o we_o may_v know_v he_o according_a to_o our_o capacity_n bu_n for_o as_o god_n by_o his_o nature_n be_v invisible_a for_o god_n be_v a_o spirit_n so_o he_o be_v neither_o see_v with_o corporal_a eye_n 4.24_o ihu_n 4.24_o not_o yet_o clarefy_v nor_o yet_o hear_v with_o these_o corporal_a and_o corruptible_a ear_n nevertheless_o he_o geve_v unto_o his_o servant_n certain_a sign_n of_o his_o presence_n and_o speak_v unto_o man_n in_o such_o manner_n of_o speech_n as_o may_v be_v understand_v for_o so_o he_o appear_v and_o speak_v to_o the_o prophet_n m._n wherefore_o that_o which_o we_o read_v in_o deutronomy_n 4.10_o deu._n 4.10_o concern_v the_o voice_n of_o god_n which_o the_o israelite_n hear_v be_v no_o otherwise_o to_o be_v understand_v than_o that_o they_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o a_o angel_n and_o not_o the_o proper_a voice_n of_o god_n a._n but_o when_o christ_n be_v make_v manifest_a in_o the_o flesh_n we_o have_v after_o a_o sort_n in_o he_o a_o visible_a image_n of_o the_o invisible_a father_n he_o himself_o say_v he_o which_o see_v i_o 14.9_o john_n 14.9_o see_v my_o father_n also_o c._n he_o therefore_o which_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v god_n in_o his_o lively_a and_o express_a image_n do_v sufficient_o thereby_o declare_v that_o he_o worship_v no_o god_n at_o all_o but_o a_o god_n of_o his_o own_o imagination_n therefore_o the_o apostle_n say_v that_o the_o jew_n have_v a_o veil_n before_o their_o eye_n 3.14_o 2._o cor._n 3.14_o lest_o they_o shall_v behold_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n in_o the_o face_n of_o christ_n 38._o his_o word_n have_v you_o not_o abide_v in_o you_o for_o who_o he_o have_v send_v he_o you_o believe_v not_o m._n that_o be_v to_o say_v you_o neither_o understande_v his_o mind_n nor_o meaning_n neither_o have_v you_o graft_v and_o root_v in_o your_o heart_n his_o word_n which_o be_v give_v to_o your_o forefather_n neither_o do_v he_o simp_o say_v and_o you_o have_v not_o his_o word_n but_o he_o add_v this_o in_o you_o for_o otherwise_o they_o have_v the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o book_n in_o their_o mouth_n and_o in_o their_o ear_n but_o in_o their_o heart_n they_o have_v it_o not_o c._n but_o this_o be_v the_o true_a profit_n when_o the_o word_n of_o god_n have_v root_n in_o we_o and_o abide_v in_o our_o heart_n for_o ever_o christ_n say_v that_o the_o heavenly_a doctrine_n have_v no_o place_n in_o the_o jew_n because_o they_o receyve_v not_o the_o son_n of_o god_n who_o the_o same_o commend_v everye_o where_o and_o right_o he_o object_v this_o unto_o they_o for_o god_n have_v not_o speak_v by_o moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n in_o vain_a and_o the_o purpose_n of_o moses_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o call_v all_o man_n unto_o christ_n the_o right_a way_n whereupon_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o they_o be_v not_o the_o disciple_n of_o moses_n which_o reject_v christ_n m._n therefore_o christ_n speak_v here_o to_o the_o jew_n as_o he_o do_v in_o another_o place_n 8.9_o john_n 8.9_o you_o neither_o know_v i_o nor_o my_o father_n a._n also_o he_o say_v ●7_n john_n 8._o ●7_n you_o seek_v to_o kill_v i_o because_o my_o word_n have_v no_o place_n in_o you_o c._n for_o how_o can_v he_o have_v the_o word_n of_o life_n abide_v in_o he_o which_o repell_v the_o life_n itself_o how_o shall_v he_o embrace_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o same_o which_o seek_v all_o that_o he_o can_v to_o destroy_v the_o soul_n of_o the_o law_n for_o the_o law_n without_o christ_n be_v imperfect_a and_o void_a the_o near_a therefore_o that_o a_o man_n come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n the_o more_o he_o have_v profit_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n wherefore_o how_o much_o soever_o the_o jew_n turk_n heretic_n and_o papist_n do_v boast_v of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n yet_o notwithstanding_o because_o they_o reject_v he_o who_o the_o father_n have_v send_v and_o do_v not_o believe_v he_o their_o boast_n be_v in_o vain_a because_o they_o have_v not_o the_o word_n of_o god_n abide_v in_o they_o 39_o search_v the_o scripture_n for_o in_o they_o you_o think_v you_o have_v eternal_a life_n and_o they_o be_v they_o which_o testify_v of_o i_o r._n the_o four_o testimony_n be_v bring_v from_o the_o scripture_n m._n the_o jew_n have_v the_o scripture_n name_o the_o law_n the_o prophet_n and_o the_o psalm_n of_o the_o which_o they_o do_v not_o a_o little_a brag_n as_o though_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o everlasting_a life_n simp_o to_o have_v and_o to_o read_v the_o scripture_n divinelye_o inspire_v and_o not_o more_o necessary_a dyligent_o to_o read_v the_o same_o and_o to_o know_v and_o embrace_v by_o faith_n christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n promise_v in_o they_o in_o who_o alone_o all_o salvation_n and_o life_n consist_v c._n therefore_o christ_n here_o reprove_v their_o foolish_a boast_n because_o they_o profess_v that_o they_o have_v life_n in_o the_o scripture_n when_o as_o they_o take_v hold_v only_o on_o the_o dead_a letter_n for_o he_o do_v not_o simp_o reprehend_v we_o because_o we_o seek_v life_n in_o the_o scripture_n see_v they_o be_v provide_v and_o appoint_v to_o we_o for_o the_o same_o purpose_n for_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v call_v the_o word_n of_o life_n and_o salvation_n red_a the_o scripture_n ordain_v of_o all_o man_n to_o be_v red_a because_o they_o which_o read_v the_o scripture_n by_o faith_n in_o christ_n be_v instruct_v to_o salvation_n &_o shall_v find_v in_o deed_n in_o they_o everlasting_a life_n but_o he_o commend_v this_o that_o the_o jew_n think_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v able_a to_o quicken_v they_o when_o as_o they_o be_v far_o from_o the_o true_a sense_n and_o meaning_n thereof_o may_v when_o they_o seek_v to_o suppress_v the_o light_n of_o life_n contain_v in_o they_o for_o how_o can_v the_o law_n bring_v life_n without_o christ_n who_o alone_o bring_v the_o same_o they_z therefore_o which_o read_v the_o scripture_n without_o faith_n in_o christ_n 3.9_o rom._n 7.7_o 2._o cor._n 3.9_o shall_v find_v nothing_o in_o they_o but_o the_o kill_n letter_n as_o the_o apostle_n paul_n teach_v moreover_o we_o be_v teach_v by_o this_o place_n to_o seek_v the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n for_o they_o which_o imagine_v of_o christ_n what_o they_o list_v themselves_o shall_v have_v at_o the_o last_o nothing_o but_o a_o vain_a phantasye_a scripture_n christ_n know_v by_o the_o scripture_n first_o of_o all_o therefore_o let_v we_o note_n that_o christ_n can_v be_v true_o know_v by_o no_o other_o mean_n than_o by_o the_o scripture_n the_o which_o be_v so_o it_o follow_v that_o we_o must_v read_v the_o scripture_n with_o this_o mind_n that_o we_o may_v find_v christ_n there_o whosoever_o declyne_v from_o this_o scope_n and_o end_n how_o so_o ever_o he_o spend_v his_o whole_a life_n and_o weary_v himself_o in_o read_v he_o shall_v never_o attain_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n for_o what_o can_v we_o know_v and_o understand_v without_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n m._n the_o scripture_n be_v give_v to_o we_o from_o above_o not_o to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v
kingdom_n consult_v among_o themselves_o to_o take_v jesus_n and_o to_o make_v he_o a_o king_n persuade_v themselves_o that_o they_o shall_v have_v plenty_n of_o all_o thing_n store_n of_o vitail_n riches_n pleasure_n the_o glory_n of_o the_o world_n liberty_n and_o other_o worldly_a commodity_n if_o so_o be_v it_o be_v their_o chance_n to_o have_v such_o a_o king_n c._n but_o they_o great_o err_v first_o that_o they_o take_v liberty_n to_o themselves_o to_o make_v themselves_o asleep_o king_n for_o the_o scripture_n appoint_v this_o only_a to_o god_n even_o as_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o psalm_n 2.6_o psal_n 2.6_o i_o have_v appoint_v my_o king_n furthermore_o what_o king_n will_v they_o have_v he_o surelye_o a_o earthly_a king_n the_o which_o be_v far_o disagrée_v from_o his_o person_n 18.36_o joh._n 18.36_o a._n for_o he_o say_v my_o kingdom_n be_v not_o of_o this_o world_n m._n but_o why_o rather_o do_v they_o not_o consult_v to_o come_v to_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o god_n of_o his_o mouth_n according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o prophecy_n the_o which_o truelye_o have_v be_v more_o agreeable_a to_o this_o confession_n this_o be_v of_o a_o truth_n the_o same_o prophet_n than_o to_o seek_v a_o kingdom_n christian_n carnal_a christian_n and_o this_o be_v the_o manner_n of_o carnal_a christian_n to_o neglect_v that_o which_o pertain_v to_o the_o save_a health_n of_o the_o inward_a man_n and_o careful_o to_o seek_v that_o which_o be_v earthly_a that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o disdain_v and_o loathe_v that_o which_o trulye_o belong_v to_o christ_n and_o for_o which_o cause_n he_o come_v into_o this_o world_n and_o gréedelye_o to_o follow_v that_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o comprehend_v in_o the_o dispensation_n of_o christ_n take_v in_o hand_n for_o our_o salvation_n and_o for_o the_o which_o he_o descend_v not_o into_o the_o earth_n c._n hereby_o let_v we_o learn_v how_o dangerous_a a_o thing_n it_o be_v in_o divine_a matter_n leave_v the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o follow_v our_o own_o sense_n and_o imagination_n for_o there_o be_v nothing_o but_o it_o do_v corrupt_v the_o overthwart_a towardness_n of_o our_o mind_n and_o what_o do_v the_o pretence_n of_o zeal_n help_n when_o as_o by_o our_o overthwart_a and_o disorder_a worship_n we_o be_v more_o injurious_a to_o god_n than_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v of_o purpose_n and_o willing_o withstand_v his_o glory_n it_o be_v also_o here_o to_o be_v noated_a that_o it_o be_v say_v that_o they_o will_v take_v he_o and_o make_v he_o a_o king_n c._n for_o they_o mean_v violent_o and_o against_o his_o will_n to_o make_v he_o a_o king_n spirit_n the_o flesh_n more_o busy_a in_o his_o work_n there_o be_v the_o spirit_n m._n thus_o the_o flesh_n be_v more_o vehement_a in_o the_o wicked_a and_o ungodlye_a purpose_n thereof_o than_o be_v the_o spyrite_n in_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v just_a and_o godly_a so_o judas_n labour_v watch_v make_v speed_n and_o by_o no_o mean_n rest_v untyl_o he_o have_v most_o wyckedlye_o finysh_v that_o which_o he_o have_v trayterouslye_o take_v in_o hand_n 26.16_o mat._n 26.16_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n the_o apostle_n slepte_v so_o we_o read_v of_o the_o bvilder_n of_o the_o tower_n of_o babylon_n this_o they_o begin_v to_o do_v 11.6_o gen._n 11.6_o neither_o can_v they_o now_o be_v stop_v from_o whatsoever_o they_o have_v imagine_v to_o do_v c._n but_o if_o we_o desire_v to_o have_v that_o honour_n acceptable_a to_o god_n and_o to_o his_o christ_n which_o we_o geve_v unto_o he_o we_o must_v always_o consider_v what_o it_o do_v require_v and_o verylye_o they_o which_o honour_n god_n after_o their_o own_o invention_n do_v after_o a_o sort_n violent_o withstand_v he_o see_v the_o foundation_n of_o true_a worship_n be_v obedience_n he_o dapart_v again_o into_o a_o mountain_n jesus_n which_o desire_a a_o far_o better_a kingdom_n and_o who_o come_v to_o this_o end_n to_o teach_v we_o to_o contemn_v riches_n pleasure_n and_o the_o glory_n of_o this_o world_n be_v not_o ignorant_a what_o they_o go_v about_o withdraw_v himself_o again_o out_o of_o the_o way_n to_o the_o mountain_n from_o whence_o he_o come_v before_o to_o feed_v they_o and_o he_o alone_o go_v privilye_o aside_o in_o such_o manner_n that_o it_o may_v not_o be_v think_v that_o he_o flee_v r._n for_o his_o kingdom_n be_v not_o carnal_a but_o spiritual_a as_o it_o be_v notable_o describe_v before_o by_o the_o prophet_n for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o truth_n of_o righteousness_n of_o peace_n and_o of_o everlasting_a life_n world_n kingdom_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o of_o this_o world_n for_o these_o be_v the_o city_n and_o town_n if_o we_o may_v so_o speak_v over_o which_o christ_n have_v the_o rule_n for_o although_o he_o do_v rule_n and_o govern_v in_o the_o whole_a world_n from_o the_o one_o sea_n to_o the_o other_o yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o do_v not_o rule_v according_a to_o the_o manner_n of_o this_o world_n neither_o do_v he_o desire_v such_o a_o kingdom_n as_o the_o prince_n of_o this_o world_n have_v of_o the_o which_o kingdom_n you_o may_v read_v more_o in_o the_o first_o of_o luke_n and_o in_o the_o seven_o and_o twenty_o chapter_n of_o mathewe_n and_o this_o be_v not_o to_o be_v pretermit_v that_o christ_n privilye_o convey_v himself_o away_o from_o those_o that_o will_v have_v make_v he_o a_o king_n and_o wyllinglye_o offer_v himself_o to_o those_o that_o seek_v to_o carry_v he_o to_o the_o cross_n leave_v a_o evident_a example_n behind_o he_o for_o those_o to_o follow_v which_o shall_v succeed_v he_o in_o the_o cross_n for_o he_o can_v not_o sincerelye_o preach_v the_o gospel_n whatsoever_o he_o be_v which_o love_v kingdom_n and_o glory_n among_o man_n for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n do_v not_o agree_v with_o the_o kingdom_n of_o this_o world_n no_o more_o than_o light_n and_o darkness_n agree_v together_o a._n what_o can_v that_o most_o impudent_a antechrist_n of_o rome_n answer_v to_o this_o bu_n who_o through_o ambition_n and_o desire_n to_o rule_v have_v oppress_v so_o many_o in_o this_o world_n that_o he_o may_v exalt_v himself_o above_o all_o that_o be_v worship_v 2.4_o thes_n 2.4_o boast_v himself_o to_o be_v god_n 16._o and_o when_o eeven_n be_v come_v his_o disciple_n go_v down_o to_o the_o sea_n c._n there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o christ_n go_v to_o hide_v himself_o untyll_o the_o people_n be_v depart_v away_o we_o know_v how_o hard_o a_o matter_n it_o be_v to_o pacify_v the_o seditious_a multitude_n and_o if_o that_o have_v be_v open_o attempt_v which_o they_o have_v conceyve_v in_o their_o mind_n the_o error_n thereof_o will_v now_o have_v be_v spread_v abroad_o and_o than_o the_o infamy_n thereof_o can_v not_o so_o easelye_o have_v be_v take_v away_o r._n he_o will_v not_o therefore_o geve_v any_o occasion_n of_o sedition_n lest_o they_o shall_v falsefye_v with_o open_a mouth_n have_v accuse_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o author_n thereof_o c._n all_o the_o time_n that_o he_o withdraw_v himself_o he_o be_v occupy_v in_o prayer_n as_o also_o the_o other_o evangelist_n report_n and_o it_o may_v be_v that_o his_o prayer_n be_v to_o his_o heavenlye_a father_n to_o correct_v and_o amend_v the_o intemperaunce_n of_o the_o people_n b._n and_o whereas_o his_o disciple_n go_v down_o to_o the_o sea_n that_o be_v not_o do_v without_o his_o commandment_n for_o he_o send_v they_o away_o nay_o 14.22_o mat._n 14.22_o he_o constrain_v they_o to_o go_v for_o that_o be_v a_o good_a occasion_n to_o get_v away_o the_o people_n 17._o and_o gat_v up_o into_o a_o ship_n and_o go_v over_o the_o sea_n towards_o capernaum_n and_o it_o be_v now_o dark_a and_o jesus_n be_v not_o come_v to_o they_o m._n whereas_o john_n say_v that_o the_o disciple_n go_v over_o the_o sea_n towards_o capernaum_n when_o mark_n write_v that_o the_o lord_n give_v they_o commandment_n to_o go_v before_o he_o to_o bethsaida_n it_o seem_v to_o have_v no_o disagréement_n at_o all_o yea_o mathewe_n and_o mark_n write_v that_o they_o arrive_v at_o the_o land_n of_o genesar_n the_o which_o also_o seem_v not_o to_o agree_v with_o that_o which_o our_o evangelist_n say_v here_o that_o they_o go_v over_o the_o sea_n towards_o capernaum_n but_o if_o thou_o diligent_o consider_v thereof_o thou_o shall_v find_v no_o disagréement_n at_o all_o in_o that_o mark_n write_v that_o the_o lord_n command_v they_o to_o go_v before_o he_o to_o bethsaida_n it_o be_v not_o repugnaunt_a neither_o with_o that_o which_o john_n say_v here_o that_o they_o go_v to_o capernaum_n nor_o with_o that_o which_o he_o say_v with_o mathewe_n that_o he_o arrive_v at_o the_o land_n of_o genesar_n for_o bethsaida_n as_o appear_v by_o luke_n be_v even_o upon_o the_o brink_n side_n of_o the_o
life_n be_v only_o to_o be_v seek_v for_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god._n moreover_o truth_n in_o this_o place_n be_v not_o compare_v with_o figure_n as_o oftentimes_o else_o where_o it_o be_v but_o christ_n respect_v what_o be_v the_o true_a life_n of_o man_n name_o by_o which_o he_o differ_v from_o brute_n beast_n and_o by_o which_o he_o excel_v among_o creature_n bu_n moses_n true_o give_v corporal_a meat_n which_o nourish_v man_n body_n and_o not_o their_o soul_n preserve_v the_o life_n natural_a but_o nothing_o profit_v the_o life_n spiritual_a neither_o come_v the_o same_o ●ut_v of_o heaven_n but_o rain_v only_o out_o of_o the_o cloud_n but_o my_o father_n give_v you_o c._n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v the_o manna_n which_o moses_n give_v do_v profit_v nothing_o to_o heavenly_a life_n but_o now_o the_o true_a bread_n of_o heaven_n be_v offer_v to_o you_o a._n before_o he_o have_v say_v which_o the_o son_n of_o man_n shall_v give_v unto_o you_o and_o now_o he_o make_v the_o father_n rather_o author_n of_o this_o gift_n than_o himself_o but_o he_o mean_v that_o the_o same_o be_v give_v by_o his_o hand_n so_o the_o antithesis_fw-la or_o comparison_n be_v not_o béetwéene_a god_n and_o moses_n but_o between_o moses_n and_o christ_n but_o christ_n name_v the_o father_n here_o for_o more_o reverence_n sake_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v acknowledge_v i_o to_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o god_n by_o who_o hand_n he_o will_v feed_v your_o soul_n to_o everlasting_a life_n bu_n for_o the_o father_n send_v the_o son_n into_o the_o earth_n for_o thk_v accomplish_v of_o man_n salvation_n so_o that_o no_o creature_n can_v give_v the_o true_a bread_n of_o life_n to_o man_n so_o impossible_a it_o be_v that_o moses_n shall_v give_v the_o same_o by_o corporal_a meat_n 10_o 2._o cor._n 10_o c._n but_o this_o seem_v to_o disagree_v with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o paul_n for_o the_o apostle_n call_v man_n spiritual_a food_n but_o we_o answer_v christ_n speak_v here_o according_a to_o their_o capasitie_n with_o who_o he_o have_v to_o do_v 4.11_o rom._n 4.11_o neither_o be_v this_o unwoonted_a and_o siledome_n find_v in_o the_o scripture_n we_o see_v how_o diverselye_o paul_n himself_o speak_v of_o circumsition_n when_o he_o handele_v the_o institution_n of_o the_o same_o he_o confess_v that_o it_o be_v the_o seal_n of_o faith_n but_o when_o he_o contend_v with_o false_a apostle_n he_o rather_o make_v it_o the_o seal_n of_o malediction_n let_v we_o here_o consider_v what_o be_v object_v to_o christ_n name_o that_o he_o be_v not_o prove_v to_o be_v the_o messiah_n except_o he_o do_v supply_v the_o want_n of_o corporal_a food_n therefore_o he_o do_v not_o set_v before_o their_o eye_n of_o what_o thing_n man_n be_v a_o figure_n but_o deny_v this_o to_o be_v the_o true_a bread_n with_o the_o which_o moses_n fill_v man_n belly_n 33._o for_o the_o bread_n of_o god_n be_v he_o which_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n and_o give_v life_n to_o the_o world_n for_o the_o bread_n of_o god_n be_v he_o bu_n now_o more_o playnelye_o and_o full_o he_o explayn_v that_o which_o he_o have_v speak_v even_o now_o concern_v the_o breeade_n c._n and_o he_o reason_v thus_o the_o same_o be_v the_o bread_n of_o heaven_n which_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n to_o geve_v life_n to_o this_o world_n in_o manna_n there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n therefore_o the_o same_o be_v not_o the_o heavenly_a bread_n nevertheless_o he_o confirm_v that_o which_o he_o say_v before_o that_o he_o be_v send_v of_o the_o father_n to_o feed_v man_n after_o a_o far_o more_o excellent_a manner_n then_o moses_n do_v kingdom_n manna_n descend_v not_o from_o god_n kingdom_n man_n descend_v from_o the_o visible_a heaven_n that_o be_v to_o say_v out_o of_o the_o cloud_n but_o not_o from_o the_o everlasting_a kingdom_n of_o god_n from_o whence_o life_n flow_v unto_o we_o wherefore_o it_o be_v not_o the_o true_a bread_n of_o heaven_n as_o be_v this_o bread_n who_o god_n send_v for_o the_o life_n of_o the_o world_n he_o call_v now_o that_o the_o bread_n of-god_n which_o before_o he_o call_v the_o bread_n of_o heaven_n not_o that_o the_o same_o procee_v from_o any_o other_o then_o from_o god_n who_o sustain_v we_o with_o bread_n in_o this_o present_a life_n but_o because_o he_o be_v judge_v divine_a which_o quicken_v soul_n to_o bless_a immortality_n b._n for_o this_o bread_n be_v god_n who_o alone_o by_o his_o spirit_n and_o by_o he_o and_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o father_n feed_v to_o life_n that_o be_v to_o say_v cause_v man_n to_o live_v for_o ever_o in_o bliss_n which_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n c._n in_o the_o descendinge_a from_o heaven_n two_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v noated_a first_o that_o we_o have_v divine_a life_n in_o christ_n because_o he_o be_v come_v from_o god_n that_o he_o may_v be_v to_o we_o the_o author_n of_o life_n second_o because_o the_o celestial_a life_n be_v never_o unto_o we_o insomuche_o that_o we_o shall_v not_o need_v neither_o to_o ascend_v above_o the_o cloud_n nor_o sail_n over_o the_o sea_n to_o seek_v the_o same_o for_o therefore_o christ_n descend_v to_o we_o because_o no_o man_n can_v assende_v to_o he_o and_o give_v life_n to_o the_o world_n this_o place_n teach_v that_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v dead_a to_o god_n christ_n life_n only_a in_o christ_n so_o far_o forth_o as_o the_o same_o be_v not_o quicken_v by_o christ_n because_o life_n shall_v never_o be_v find_v in_o any_o other_o than_o in_o he_o so_o that_o here_o all_o manner_n of_o worship_n belong_v boath_n to_o the_o jew_n and_o also_o to_o the_o gentile_n be_v reject_v all_o the_o philosophye_n and_o wisdom_n of_o the_o gentile_n and_o all_o the_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n of_o the_o jew_n with_o the_o whole_a law_n have_v no_o manner_n of_o power_n to_o quicken_v otherwise_o god_n have_v send_v his_o son_n in_o vain_a which_o be_v this_o heavenlye_a bread_n to_o quicken_v and_o to_o save_v the_o world_n m._n all_o man_n here_o for_o the_o most_o part_n by_o this_o word_n world_n understande_v the_o elect_a even_o as_o they_o do_v in_o this_o place_n also_o 16._o john_n 3_o 16._o so_o god_n love_v the_o world_n that_o he_o give_v his_o only_a beget_v son_n that_o all_o that_o believe_v in_o he_o shall_v not_o perish_v but_o have_v life_n everlasting_a 34_o then_o say_v they_o unto_o he_o lord_n evermore_o give_v we_o this_o bread_n c._n there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o they_o speak_v ironic_a that_o be_v to_o say_v meaning_n the_o contrary_n thereby_o to_o note_n christ_n of_o vanity_n because_o he_o boast_v that_o he_o will_v geve_v the_o bread_n of_o life_n m._n as_o if_o they_o shall_v have_v say_v we_o be_v so_o far_o from_o gainsay_v this_o bread_n of_o the_o which_o thou_o speak_v that_o we_o desire_v always_o to_o receyve_v the_o same_o of_o thou_o that_o we_o may_v never_o die_v but_o live_v for_o ever_o r._n very_o if_o thou_o will_v ever_o geve_v we_o this_o bread_n we_o will_v then_o acount_v thou_o to_o be_v that_o great_a messiah_n and_o will_v worship_v thou_o for_o christ_n for_o if_o thou_o will_v perform_v that_o which_o thou_o do_v promise_v we_o shall_v prosper_v well_o we_o shall_v not_o sweat_v with_o labour_n but_o shall_v live_v in_o most_o pleasant_a ease_n but_o can_v thou_o give_v that_o to_o we_o which_o thou_o thyself_o want_v thou_o promise_v bread_n of_o life_n and_o yet_o thou_o want_v boath_n a_o garner_n and_o wheat_n to_o bake_v corporal_a bread_n with_o all_o how_o then_o can_v thou_o give_v we_o that_o more_o precious_a bread_n bu_n after_o this_o manner_n speak_v the_o woman_n of_o samaria_n lord_n give_v i_o this_o water_n that_o i_o thirst_v not_o nor_o come_v hither_o to_o draw_v even_o so_o flesh_n and_o blood_n deride_v the_o gospel_n because_o the_o same_o be_v in_o outward_a show_n very_o base_a and_o contemptible_a promise_v all_o everlasting_a goodness_n when_o as_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n it_o suffer_v the_o faithful_a to_o hunger_n to_o thirst_n to_o pine_v with_o cold_a to_o be_v banish_v and_o to_o be_v slay_v 4.23_o mat._n 27.42_o luk._n 4.23_o so_o also_o it_o be_v say_v to_o christ_n he_o save_v other_o but_o himself_o he_o can_v not_o save_v and_o in_o another_o place_n physician_n heal_v thyself_o even_o so_o wicked_a man_n when_o they_o reject_v the_o promise_n of_o god_n be_v not_o content_a with_o this_o one_o wickedness_n make_v christ_n the_o cause_n and_o author_n of_o their_o infidelity_n 35._o and_o jesus_n say_v unto_o they_o i_o be_o the_o bread_n of_o life_n he_o that_o come_v to_o i_o shall_v not_o hunger_n and_o he_o that_o beleve_v on_o i_o shall_v never_o thirst_v i_o be_o the_o bread_n of_o life_n
fruit_n 37._o ver._n 37._o also_o of_o the_o good_a tree_n we_o say_v in_o the_o winter_n this_o tree_n bring_v forth_o good_a fruit_n 13.27_o john_n 13.27_o so_o these_o jew_n to_o who_o christ_n make_v answer_v in_o this_o place_n do_v then_o commit_v the_o sin_n of_o murder_n not_o in_o act_n but_o in_o thought_n meditation_n and_o purpose_n when_o they_o speak_v these_o thing_n unto_o the_o lord_n for_o they_o seek_v to_o kill_v he_o as_o he_o short_o after_o say_v unto_o they_o you_o seek_v to_o kill_v i_o so_o the_o lord_n say_v to_o judas_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o supper_n that_o thou_o do_v do_v quick_o and_o what_o be_v the_o miserable_a wretch_n then_o do_v in_o action_n he_o be_v at_o supper_n but_o in_o thought_n and_o mind_n he_o be_v betray_v the_o lord_n the_o lord_n speak_v not_o of_o that_o which_o he_o do_v in_o action_n but_o of_o that_o which_o he_o do_v in_o heart_n and_o in_o mind_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o the_o lord_n say_v not_o that_o which_o thou_o will_v do_v but_o that_o which_o thou_o do_v do_v quick_o so_o to_o fulfil_v the_o law_n and_o the_o commandment_n be_v take_v in_o the_o scripture_n for_o a_o desire_n to_o do_v the_o law_n and_o the_o commandment_n therefore_o to_o commit_v sin_n be_v not_o simp_o to_o sin_n but_o to_o have_v a_o desire_n to_o sin_n although_o sin_n be_v not_o finish_v in_o act_n even_o as_o to_o do_v good_a be_v not_o simp_o to_o do_v good_a in_o act_n and_o deed_n but_o to_o have_v a_o desire_n to_o good_a although_o the_o good_a work_n come_v not_o always_o in_o act_n moreover_o although_o boath_n the_o elect_a and_o the_o reprobate_n do_v sin_n yet_o not_o withstand_v the_o elect_a do_v not_o commit_v sin_n but_o the_o reprobate_n only_o for_o they_o which_o be_v of_o god_n as_o they_o have_v seed_n of_o god_n in_o they_o even_o so_o they_o detest_v sin_n from_o their_o heart_n and_o that_o which_o they_o detest_v they_o can_v studiouslye_o meditate_v and_o fynishe_v this_o matter_n saint_n john_n very_o notable_o handle_v in_o his_o first_o epistle_n the_o which_o notwithstanding_o favour_v not_o the_o sect_n of_o the_o annabaptiste_n which_o by_o these_o place_n go_v about_o to_o prove_v that_o a_o christian_a man_n symplye_o can_v sin_n affirm_v also_o because_o they_o will_v be_v count_v true_a christian_n that_o they_o be_v clean_o without_o sin_n and_o that_o they_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n sin_n the_o which_o be_v a_o most_o subtle_a practice_n of_o satan_n in_o they_o that_o he_o may_v bring_v the_o weak_a mind_n of_o the_o godly_a which_o do_v feel_v the_o force_n of_o sin_n in_o themselves_o to_o desperation_n but_o there_o be_v no_o mention_v of_o sin_n make_v here_o general_o but_o of_o a_o willing_a desyer_n and_o meditation_n to_o sin_n as_o we_o have_v say_v 35._o and_o the_o servant_n abide_v not_o in_o the_o house_n for_o ever_o but_o the_o son_n abide_v ever_o bu_n now_o follow_v the_o denounce_v of_o punishment_n belong_v to_o servant_n under_o the_o similitude_n take_v from_o law_n and_o politic_a government_n as_o the_o servant_n though_o for_o a_o time_n he_o rule_v and_o govern_v be_v not_o nevertheless_o the_o master_n of_o the_o house_n but_o be_v thrust_v out_o of_o the_o door_n or_o change_v at_o the_o pleasure_n of_o his_o lord_n evenso_fw-la the_o bondeseruaunt_n of_o sin_n though_o for_o a_o time_n he_o play_v the_o hypocrite_n and_o counterfeit_v piety_n and_o seem_v to_o have_v god_n favourable_a unto_o he_o be_v notwithstanding_o in_o due_a time_n exclude_v from_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n and_o fellowship_n of_o saint_n for_o the_o house_n figure_v the_o fellowship_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o saint_n c._n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o there_o be_v no_o liberty_n perfect_v and_o perpetual_a but_o that_o which_o be_v get_v by_o the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o this_o mean_v christ_n reprove_v the_o jew_n of_o vanity_n because_o they_o brag_v of_o a_o counterfeit_n show_v as_o if_o they_o have_v the_o thing_n itself_o for_o whereas_o they_o be_v the_o carnal_a progeny_n of_o abraham_n they_o be_v nothing_o but_o counterfeit_n they_o have_v authority_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n but_o such_o authority_n as_o ishmael_n usurp_v to_o himself_o for_o a_o short_a time_n the_o servant_n exalt_v himself_o against_o the_o true_a and_o lawful_a son_n the_o sum_n be_v this_o whosoever_o boast_n themselves_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o abraham_n do_v nothing_o else_o but_o make_v a_o certain_a colour_a and_o counterfayte_o show_v 36._o if_o therefore_o the_o son_n make_v you_o free_a then_o be_v you_o free_a in_o deed_n m._n christ_n speak_v here_o of_o himself_o but_o in_o the_o third_o person_n bu_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v whosoever_o trulye_o desire_v to_o be_v free_a and_o to_o be_v the_o heir_n of_o everlasting_a life_n let_v he_o seek_v to_o be_v make_v free_a by_o i_o which_o be_o the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o be_v to_o say_v let_v he_o believe_v i_o and_o abide_v in_o my_o word_n and_o the_o truth_n shall_v make_v he_o free_a c._n by_o these_o word_n he_o declare_v that_o the_o power_n of_o freedom_n belong_v to_o he_o alone_a and_o that_o all_o other_o be_v bear_v servant_n be_v not_o make_v free_a but_o by_o his_o grace_n only_o for_o whatsoever_o he_o have_v proper_a by_o nature_n he_o give_v unto_o we_o by_o adoption_n when_o we_o be_v by_o faith_n ingraff_v in_o his_o body_n and_o be_v make_v his_o member_n therefore_o our_o goodness_n come_v by_o the_o freedom_n of_o christ_n christ_n freedom_n come_v by_o christ_n but_o yet_o we_o obtain_v the_o same_o by_o faith_n which_o also_o bring_v to_o pass_v that_o christ_n do_v regenerate_v we_o by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n m._n this_o clause_n in_o deed_n reject_v all_o the_o freedom_n that_o come_v by_o flesh_n and_o blood_n because_o the_o same_o be_v not_o true_a liberty_n so_o that_o liberty_n be_v seek_v in_o vain_a without_o christ_n for_o he_o geve_v unto_o we_o his_o spirit_n whereby_o we_o be_v free_a follow_v with_o willing_a mind_n those_o thing_n that_o belong_v unto_o god_n which_o only_o be_v true_a liberty_n for_o what_o do_v it_o profit_n in_o flesh_n to_o the_o rule_n the_o whole_a world_n and_o in_o mind_n to_o be_v the_o servant_n of_o death_n for_o so_o long_o as_o concupiscence_n bear_v any_o rule_n inv_v we_o as_o it_o bring_v we_o to_o sin_n so_o also_o it_o lead_v we_o to_o death_n for_o the_o reward_n of_o sin_n be_v death_n 8.13_o rom._n 6.26_o jam._n 1_o rom._n 8.13_o also_o s._n james_n say_v lust_n when_o it_o have_v conceive_v bring_v forth_o sin_n and_o sin_n when_o it_o be_v finish_v bring_v forth_o death_n and_o the_o apostle_n paul_n say_v if_o you_o live_v according_a to_o the_o flesh_n you_o shall_v dye_v 37._o i_o know_v that_o you_o be_v abraham_n seed_n but_o you_o seek_v mean_n to_o kill_v i_o because_o my_o word_n have_v no_o place_n in_o you_o bu_n now_o our_o savioure_n christ_n do_v more_o strong_o confute_v the_o swell_a and_o vain_a glory_n and_o boast_v which_o be_v in_o the_o jew_n by_o which_o they_o boast_v themselves_o to_o be_v the_o seed_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o posterity_n of_o abraham_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v admit_v i_o shall_v grant_v unto_o you_o this_o thing_n in_o the_o which_o you_o so_o great_o glory_n what_o notwithstanding_o do_v it_o profit_v they_o to_o be_v call_v the_o child_n of_o abraham_n which_o rage_n and_o fume_n against_o god_n and_o his_o minister_n who_o be_v move_v with_o wicked_a hatred_n against_o the_o truth_n be_v swift_o carry_v to_o shed_v innocent_a blood_n r._n you_o be_v in_o deed_n the_o posterity_n of_o abraham_n but_o not_o the_o true_a &_o spiritual_a but_o the_o carnal_a seed_n the_o which_o may_v manifestlye_o appear_v hereby_o for_o that_o you_o go_v about_o to_o kill_v i_o beléeve_v not_o my_o word_n for_o so_o be_v the_o carnal_a son_n of_o abraham_n wont_v to_o persecute_v the_o spiritual_a b._n these_o thing_n he_o speak_v spiritual_o to_o those_o hypocrite_n and_o enemy_n the_o jew_n which_o beléeve_v not_o in_o he_o 4.29_o gala._n 4.29_o howbeit_o he_o mean_v by_o these_o word_n to_o declare_v unto_o those_o man_n also_o that_o god_n nothing_o regard_v the_o liberty_n of_o the_o flesh_n he_o teach_v that_o boath_n true_a liberty_n and_o nobility_n must_v be_v esteem_v and_o judge_v by_o work_n and_o that_o it_o be_v nothing_o to_o be_v bear_v after_o the_o flesh_n of_o abraham_n if_o the_o spirit_n of_o abraham_n be_v not_o also_o adjoin_v there_o unto_o whereof_o follow_v both_o the_o life_n and_o purpose_n of_o abraham_n c._n when_o he_o say_v that_o they_o seek_v to_o kill_v he_o because_o his_o word_n have_v no_o place_n
be_v encourage_v reverent_o to_o worship_n christ_n by_o these_o voice_n sound_v from_o heaven_n 49.10_o psal_n 2.12_o psal_n 96.8_o phil._n 2.10_o math._n 17.5_o gen._n 49.10_o kiss_v the_o son_n let_v all_o the_o angel_n worship_v he_o let_v every_o knee_n bow_n to_o he_o hear_v he_o the_o people_n shall_v be_v gaeher_v unto_o he_o 55._o and_o yet_o you_o have_v not_o know_v he_o but_o i_o know_v he_o and_o if_o i_o say_v i_o know_v he_o not_o i_o shall_v be_v a_o liar_n like_o unto_o you_o but_o i_o know_v he_o and_o keep_v he_o say_v m._n because_o he_o know_v that_o his_o adversary_n boast_v and_o brag_v of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n whenas_o notwithstanding_o they_o be_v void_a of_o the_o same_o c._n he_o wre_v from_o they_o the_o false_a pretence_n of_o the_o name_n of_o god_n bu_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v as_o by_o false_a religion_n you_o worship_n god_n so_o you_o false_o challenge_v to_o yourselves_o the_o knowledge_n of_o he_o he_o be_v spiritual_a but_o you_o savoure_v nothing_o but_o that_o which_o be_v carnal_a c._n by_o this_o place_n we_o learn_v what_o be_v the_o lawful_a profession_n of_o faith_n namely_o that_o which_o procee_v from_o true_a knowledge_n and_o whereof_o come_v that_o knowledge_n but_o of_o the_o word_n therefore_o whosoever_o bo_v of_o the_o name_n of_o god_n without_o the_o word_n of_o god_n they_o do_v nothing_o else_o but_o lie_n but_o i_o know_v he_o christ_n oppose_v or_o set_v the_o trust_n of_o his_o conscience_n against_o the_o perverse_a péevishnesse_n of_o his_o adversary_n and_o thus_o ought_v all_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n to_o be_v mind_v and_o to_o hold_v themselves_o content_v with_o this_o that_o they_o have_v god_n on_o their_o side_n yea_o though_o the_o whoale_n world_n rise_v up_o against_o they_o thus_o invincible_a stand_v all_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n a_o gainste_n the_o terrible_a assault_n of_o the_o world_n but_o where_o the_o perfect_v knowledge_n of_o god_n be_v want_v nothing_o may_v stay_v and_o uphoulde_v us._n and_o if_o i_o say_v i_o know_v he_o not_o bu_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v i_o be_o constrain_v to_o speak_v these_o thing_n with_o so_o great_a a_o oath_n c_o for_o the_o necessity_n of_o my_o office_n force_v i_o to_o speak_v because_o silence_n be_v a_o false_a betray_n of_o the_o truth_n a_o notable_a place_n by_o which_o we_o be_v teach_v that_o god_n do_v reveal_v himself_o unto_o we_o to_o this_o end_n that_o we_o may_v profess_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o heart_n with_o the_o mouth_n so_o often_o as_o need_n require_v and_o this_o ought_v not_o a_o little_a to_o terrify_v we_o that_o they_o which_o dissemble_v to_o please_v man_n and_o do_v either_o deny_v god_n truth_n or_o do_v counterfeit_v the_o same_o with_o wicked_a devise_n be_v not_o light_o reprehend_v but_o be_v send_v to_o the_o child_n of_o the_o devil_n 56_o your_o father_n abraham_n be_v glad_a to_o see_v my_o day_n and_o see_v it_o and_o rejoice_v c._n now_o he_o make_v answer_v to_o that_o which_o they_o have_v object_v concern_v abraham_n and_o he_o grant_v to_o they_o in_o word_n only_o that_o which_o before_o he_o have_v deny_v namely_o that_o abraham_n be_v their_o father_n show_v that_o abraham_n be_v save_v by_o faith_n bv_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v you_o think_v that_o your_o father_n abraham_n be_v dead_a and_o i_o seem_v unto_o you_o to_o speak_v that_o which_o be_v wicked_a in_o affirm_v that_o they_o which_o keep_v my_o word_n shall_v live_v for_o ever_o and_o never_o dye_v but_o i_o say_v true_o that_o abraham_n lyve_v and_o that_o all_o his_o life_n time_n he_o desire_v nothing_o more_o than_o to_o see_v my_o kingdom_n flourish_v he_o desyered_a i_o be_v absent_a and_o you_o despise_v i_o be_v present_a c._n that_o which_o christ_n speak_v hear_v of_o abraham_n alone_a belong_v to_o all_o the_o saint_n but_o yet_o this_o doctrine_n have_v more_o weight_n and_o force_n in_o the_o person_n of_o abraham_n because_o he_o be_v the_o father_n of_o the_o whoale_n church_n this_o word_n daye_n in_o this_o place_n signify_v the_o time_n of_o chistes_n kingdom_n from_o the_o which_o christ_n have_v take_v upon_o he_o our_o flesh_n appear_v unto_o the_o world_n to_o fulfil_v the_o office_n of_o a_o redeemer_n some_o will_v have_v it_o to_o signify_v eternity_n and_o othersome_a the_o cross_n of_o christ_n and_o this_o place_n nothing_o disagréee_v with_o that_o where_o it_o be_v say_v many_o king_n and_o prophet_n desire_v to_o see_v those_o day_n which_o you_o see_v and_o have_v not_o see_v they_o because_o 10.24_o luk._n 10.24_o see_v faith_n in_o the_o behold_v of_o christ_n have_v his_o degréese_n it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o old_a prophet_n behold_v christ_n a_o far_o of_o even_o as_o he_o be_v promise_v unto_o they_o &_o yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o may_v not_o be_v see_v present_a as_o he_o reveal_v himself_o familiar_o to_o man_n when_o he_o descend_v from_o heaven_n let_v all_o the_o godly_a learn_fw-mi hear_v by_o the_o example_n of_o abraham_n to_o stay_v themselves_o upon_o christ_n alone_a and_o always_o to_o have_v respect_n unto_o he_o that_o they_o may_v have_v continual_a occasion_n of_o rejoice_v with_o a_o godly_a father_n 57_o then_o say_v the_o jew_n thou_o be_v not_o yet_o fifty_o year_n old_a and_o haste_v thou_o see_v abraham_n m._n the_o promise_n of_o god_n seem_v foolish_a to_o human_a reason_n the_o jew_n again_o according_a to_o their_o wont_a malice_n make_v no_o answer_n to_o those_o thing_n which_o concern_v themselves_o but_o be_v so_o give_v to_o cavil_n that_o they_o take_v hold_v only_o of_o those_o thing_n out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n which_o may_v have_v any_o show_n to_o serve_v their_o turn_n to_o cavil_n c._n they_o go_v about_o to_o confute_v the_o say_n of_o christ_n by_o a_o impossibility_n because_o he_o make_v himself_o equal_a in_o age_n to_o abraham_n which_o be_v dead_a many_o year_n before_o and_o he_o himself_o not_o yet_o fifty_o year_n of_o age_n for_o although_o christ_n be_v not_o as_o yet_o four_o and_o thirty_o year_n old_a yet_o notwithstanding_o they_o grant_v unto_o he_o mo_z year_n lest_o they_o may_v seem_v to_o deal_v with_o he_o to_o exact_o and_o precise_o as_o if_o they_o shall_v say_v thou_o very_o can_v not_o make_v thyself_o so_o old_a that_o thou_o canst_v boa_v thyself_o to_o be_v fifty_o bu_n behold_v therefore_o thy_o great_a impudency_n in_o lie_v see_v all_o man_n know_v how_o that_o abraham_n die_v many_o year_n ago_o 58._o jesus_n say_v unto_o they_o very_o very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o before_o abraham_n be_v i_o be_o m._n that_o which_o the_o jew_n do_v false_o discredit_v as_o unreasonable_a and_o as_o a_o monsterouse_a lie_n christ_n himself_o constant_o mayntayn_v c._n and_o because_o the_o unbéeleve_n and_o carnal_a judge_v after_o the_o aspect_n and_o apperaunce_n only_o he_o put_v they_o here_o in_o mind_n that_o he_o have_v somewhat_o great_a and_o high_a than_o human_a show_n and_o reason_n the_o which_o be_v hide_v from_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o flesh_n be_v behold_v with_o the_o eye_n of_o faith_n only_o therefore_o by_o these_o word_n christ_n exempt_v himself_o from_o the_o common_a sort_n of_o man_n and_o challenge_v to_o himself_o a_o divine_a and_o heavenly_a power_n the_o sense_n and_o feel_v whereof_o have_v be_v shed_v forth_o upon_o all_o age_n even_o from_o the_o béegin_n of_o the_o world_n also_o this_o place_n agréeeth_n with_o that_o say_n of_o the_o apostle_n christ_n yesterdaye_v to_o day_n and_o for_o ever_o 13.8_o heb._n 13.8_o for_o he_o be_v know_v to_o be_v a_o mediatoure_n from_o the_o begin_n in_o who_o god_n the_o father_n shall_v be_v please_v in_o that_o notwithstanding_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o mediator_n have_v be_v show_v forth_o in_o all_o age_n this_o depend_v upon_o his_o eternal_a divinity_n so_o that_o this_o say_n of_o christ_n contain_v a_o notable_a commendation_n of_o the_o divine_a essence_n chr._n and_o the_o verb_n of_o the_o present_a tense_n or_o time_n make_v it_o of_o the_o more_o weight_n for_o it_o signify_v that_o the_o same_o state_n be_v equal_a &_o alike_o from_o the_o begin_n to_o the_o end_n b_o therefore_o that_o which_o he_o say_v here_o signify_v the_o same_o 1.1_o john_n 1.1_o that_o this_o place_n do_v in_o the_o beginning_n be_v the_o word_n 59_o then_o take_v they_o up_o stone_n to_o cast_v at_o he_o but_o jesus_n hide_v himself_o and_o go_v out_o of_o the_o tempell_a m._n they_o perceive_v that_o the_o lord_n speak_v that_o of_o himself_o which_o as_o it_o be_v not_o human_a so_o it_o set_v forth_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o divinity_n and_o therefore_o to_o make_v he_o to_o
be_v with_o christ_n true_a pastor_n because_o they_o enter_v in_o to_o the_o church_n by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o feed_v the_o people_n of_o god_n in_o the_o pasture_n of_o christ_n c._n therefore_o we_o must_v note_n by_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n that_o thing_n contrary_a be_v compare_v here_o together_o but_o yet_o between_o the_o law_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n there_o shall_v be_v so_o little_a difference_n and_o contrarietye_n find_v that_o the_o law_n shall_v appear_v to_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o preparative_n to_o the_o gospel_n to_o be_v short_a christ_n testify_v that_o all_o doctrine_n by_o which_o the_o world_n have_v be_v seduce_v from_o he_o be_v nothing_o but_o mortal_a plague_n because_o without_o he_o there_o be_v nothing_o but_o deadly_a destruction_n r._n therefore_o all_o the_o teacher_n of_o human_a tradition_n and_o the_o carnal_a interpreter_n of_o the_o law_n be_v théeve_n and_o murderer_n for_o with_o their_o pestilent_a docttrine_n they_o murder_v soul_n for_o they_o which_o believe_v lie_n do_v perish_v together_o with_o the_o lie_n which_o they_o believe_v c._n nevertheless_o by_o these_o we_o be_v teach_v truth_n antiquity_n prove_v not_o the_o truth_n how_o much_o god_n esteem_v of_o antiquity_n and_o how_o much_o also_o we_o ought_v to_o eastern_a of_o the_o same_o so_o often_o as_o it_o be_v bring_v in_o to_o contend_v with_o christ_n for_o to_o the_o end_n no_o man_n may_v be_v move_v herewith_o that_o in_o all_o age_n there_o have_v be_v teacher_n who_o have_v care_v for_o nothing_o less_o than_o to_o direct_v &_o lead_v man_n unto_o christ_n christ_n himself_o expreslye_o say_v that_o it_o make_v no_o matter_n how_o many_o such_o there_o have_v be_v or_o how_o long_o ago_o they_o have_v be_v because_o this_o be_v to_o be_v consider_v that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o door_n the_o which_o whosoever_o leave_v and_o dig_v up_o gate_n and_o break_v up_o door_n to_o enter_v in_o be_v a_o thief_n and_o a_o robber_n but_o the_o sheep_n do_v not_o hear_v they_o m._n by_o these_o sheep_n he_o mean_v the_o elect_a c._n and_o he_o prove_v that_o they_o be_v not_o of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n which_o have_v be_v lead_v out_o of_o the_o way_n by_o false_a teacher_n first_o of_o all_o this_o be_v therefore_o speak_v lest_o when_o we_o behold_v the_o great_a multitude_n of_o such_o as_o go_v astraye_n we_o by_o their_o example_n think_v that_o we_o also_o may_v go_v astraye_n and_o perish_v for_o this_o be_v no_o small_a consolation_n and_o matter_n of_o trust_n when_o we_o know_v that_o christ_n have_v always_o defend_v his_o sheep_n from_o the_o manifold_a lying_n in_o weight_n of_o wolf_n and_o théeve_n a._n to_o this_o effect_n also_o pertain_v that_o which_o he_o say_v in_o another_o place_n namely_o that_o false_a prophet_n and_o false_a christ_n shall_v work_v wonder_n so_o that_o many_o shall_v be_v seduce_v and_o even_o the_o elect_a also_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a 24.24_o mat_n 24.24_o c._n it_o may_v be_v and_o often_o time_n it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o sheep_n do_v err_v and_o go_v astraye_n before_o they_o be_v gather_v into_o the_o shéepefolde_a of_o christ_n that_o be_v to_o say_v before_o their_o call_n in_o like_a manner_n it_o come_v often_o time_n to_o pass_v that_o they_o which_o have_v be_v of_o the_o household_n of_o faith_n be_v stranger_n for_o a_o time_n and_o after_o a_o sort_n do_v cease_v to_o be_v sheep_n but_o these_o thing_n be_v nothing_o repugnaunt_a with_o this_o sentence_n of_o christ_n for_o this_o be_v the_o simple_a meaning_n of_o christ_n that_o all_o the_o elect_a of_o god_n though_o they_o have_v be_v tempt_v with_o a_o innumerable_a sort_n of_o error_n be_v notwithstanding_o keep_v in_o the_o obedience_n of_o godly_a faith_n lest_o they_o shall_v be_v make_v a_o prey_n for_o satan_n and_o his_o minister_n and_o this_o work_n of_o god_n be_v no_o less_o wonderful_a when_o he_o gather_v together_o the_o sheep_n that_o for_o a_o time_n have_v go_v astraye_n than_o if_o they_o shall_v have_v remain_v shut_v up_o in_o the_o shéepefolde_a for_o ever_o for_o this_o be_v always_o and_o without_o exception_n true_a that_o they_o be_v not_o of_o we_o i9_n i._o john_n ay_o i9_n which_o go_v out_o from_o we_o but_o they_o which_o be_v of_o we_o do_v abide_v with_o we_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n bu_n therefore_o because_o the_o elect_v have_v always_o the_o mark_n of_o god_n child_n and_o of_o the_o lord_n slocke_n print_v in_o their_o heart_n by_o and_o by_o they_o know_v that_o the_o same_o which_o be_v set_v forth_o by_o false_a teacher_n procee_v from_o another_o spirit_n these_o sheep_n love_n christ_n desyer_n christ_n and_o seek_v after_o christ_n if_o any_o man_n therefore_o preach_v he_o if_o any_o man_n bring_v his_o word_n they_o joyful_o receive_v the_o same_o whereas_o they_o do_v not_o know_v a_o stranger_n voice_n but_o flee_v from_o the_o same_o they_o be_v stranger_n which_o differ_v from_o christ_n which_o want_v the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n and_o which_o abhor_v the_o voice_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v to_o say_v they_o be_v stranger_n which_o forsake_v the_o true_a faith_n teacher_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n a_o false_a teacher_n wherefore_o let_v not_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n marvel_v that_o we_o will_v not_o hear_v his_o voice_n for_o he_o preach_v not_o unto_o we_o christ_n the_o true_a shepherd_n &_o in_o he_o all_o thing_n but_o he_o preach_v unto_o we_o himself_o for_o he_o will_v seem_v to_o be_v and_o will_v be_v account_v in_o deed_n the_o head_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n he_o boast_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o great_a pastoure_n in_o earth_n the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n which_o can_v bind_v and_o remit_v our_o sin_n therefore_o see_v we_o be_v christ_n and_o do_v know_v no_o man_n voice_n but_o the_o voice_n of_o this_o our_o shepherd_n let_v that_o lycaon_n with_o his_o deceyvour_n and_o false_a teacher_n go_v to_o the_o place_n which_o he_o have_v deserve_v write_v lycaon_n be_v a_o king_n of_o the_o archades_n who_o go_v about_o by_o murder_n to_o deface_v the_o god_n jupiter_n as_o ovid_n write_v c._n but_o if_o so_o be_v the_o number_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v less_o than_o be_v to_o be_v wish_v also_o if_o so_o be_v many_o out_o of_o a_o few_o slide_v away_o the_o godly_a teacher_n have_v herewith_o all_o to_o comfort_v themselves_o that_o god_n elect_v which_o be_v the_o sheep_n of_o christ_n hear_v they_o a._n he_o which_o know_v god_n say_v saint_n john_n hear_v us._n c._n it_o be_v our_o part_n diligent_o to_o endeavour_n ourselves_o &_o by_o all_o mean_n to_o seek_v to_o bring_v the_o whoale_n world_n to_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n if_o it_o may_v be_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n let_v we_o be_v content_v with_o our_o number_n be_v it_o never_o so_o small_a 9_o i_o be_o the_o door_n by_o i_o if_o any_o man_n enter_v in_o he_o shall_v be_v safe_a and_o shall_v go_v in_o and_o out_o and_o find_v pasture_n i_o be_o the_o door_n r._n twice_o christ_n call_v himself_o the_o door_n not_o by_o superfluous_a repartition_n but_o by_o a_o necessary_a explication_n of_o a_o double_a door_n b._n for_o there_o be_v a_o door_n of_o true_a pastor_n and_o another_o also_o for_o sheep_n as_o we_o have_v declare_v before_o in_o the_o seven_o verse_n by_o i_o if_o any_o man_n enter_v c._n a_o notable_a consolation_n for_o the_o godly_a for_o christ_n promise_v unto_o they_o health_n and_o a_o prosperous_a state_n then_o he_o express_v two_o part_n the_o first_o be_v that_o they_o shall_v go_v safe_o whether_o soever_o it_o shall_v be_v needful_a the_o second_o be_v that_o they_o shall_v eat_v to_o their_o contentation_n by_o egress_n and_o regress_n that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o go_v out_o and_o come_n in_o the_o scripture_n often_o time_n mean_v all_o the_o action_n of_o man_n life_n 8_o 2._o par._n 2.10_o deu_fw-la 28.6_o psa_fw-la 12i_fw-la 8_o m._n as_o in_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o the_o second_o book_n of_o chronicle_n in_o the_o eight_o and_o twenty_o chapter_n of_o deuteronomie_n and_o in_o the_o hundred_o and_o one_o and_o twenty_o psalm_n c._n therefore_o in_o these_o word_n a_o double_a use_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v commend_v unto_o we_o the_o first_o that_o in_o christ_n our_o soul_n shall_v find_v pasture_n which_o otherwise_o be_v ready_a to_o pine_v and_o be_v feed_v with_o nothing_o but_o wind_n the_o second_o that_o he_o will_v be_v a_o sure_a defence_n and_o fort_n to_o we_o against_o the_o invasion_n of_o wolf_n and_o théeve_n r._n for_o the_o gospel_n the_o word_n of_o life_n righteousness_n salvation_n life_n and_o all_o god_n grace_n be_v pasture_n
to_o pass_v and_o then_o if_o they_o can_v not_o snare_v he_o with_o word_n to_o lay_v hand_n on_o he_o therefore_o christ_n although_o he_o seem_v to_o be_v as_o it_o be_v take_v already_o yet_o by_o the_o wonderful_a power_n of_o god_n escape_v out_o of_o their_o hand_n c._n by_o which_o we_o be_v teach_v that_o we_o be_v not_o give_v as_o a_o prey_n to_o the_o wicked_a who_o the_o lord_n do_v often_o time_n bridle_n at_o his_o will_n and_o pleasure_n m._n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o unlawefull_a for_o the_o minister_n of_o christ_n to_o seek_v to_o escape_v out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o wicked_a 40._o and_o go_v away_o again_o beyond_o jordane_n into_o the_o place_n where_o john_n before_o have_v baptize_v and_o there_o he_o abide_v m._n christ_n leave_v jerusalem_n go_v over_o jordane_n for_o because_o that_o region_n as_o a_o sanctuary_n serve_v for_o his_o security_n and_o rest_n for_o such_o be_v the_o corruption_n and_o wickedness_n of_o the_o citizen_n of_o jerusalem_n that_o the_o farther_z any_o place_n be_v from_o they_o the_o more_o convenient_a the_o same_o be_v for_o christ_n and_o again_o the_o more_o near_o the_o more_o perilouse_a it_o be_v for_o he_o to_o abide_v in_o because_o of_o the_o wickedness_n of_o the_o jew_n whenas_o notwithstanding_o if_o there_o have_v be_v any_o place_n in_o the_o whoale_n world_n foot_n for_o the_o preach_n of_o god_n kingdom_n jerusalem_n shall_v have_v be_v the_o same_o a._n the_o law_n say_v the_o prophet_n shall_v go_v forth_o of_o zion_n and_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n out_o of_o jerusalem_n 24._o i_o king_n 24._o m_o euenso_fw-la the_o near_o that_o a_o man_n be_v to_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n if_o he_o be_v a_o good_a man_n the_o more_o he_o be_v in_o danger_n c._n christ_n therefore_o teach_v we_o by_o his_o example_n to_o use_v occasion_n where_o john_n before_o have_v baptize_v bu_n he_o go_v apart_o into_o that_o place_n that_o by_o his_o presence_n he_o may_v bring_v in_o rememberaunce_n the_o testimony_n of_o john_n which_o he_o bear_v unto_o christ_n and_o that_o he_o may_v draw_v many_o to_o jesus_n the_o savioure_n of_o the_o world_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o himself_o whereupon_o also_o it_o follow_v 41._o and_o many_o resort_v unto_o he_o and_o say_v john_n do_v no_o miracle_n but_o all_o thing_n that_o john_n speak_v of_o this_o man_n be_v true_a and_o many_o resort_v to_o he_o m._n as_o the_o light_n set_v upon_o a_o candelsticke_n can_v be_v hide_v so_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n although_o it_o be_v condemn_v of_o the_o reprobate_n find_v many_o which_o follow_v the_o same_o though_o it_o flee_v away_o bu_n faithful_a sheep_n will_v never_o forsake_v their_o shepherd_n m._n there_o be_v a_o type_n before_o of_o this_o matter_n in_o david_n to_o who_o he_o flée_v from_o the_o face_n of_o saul_n 57.20_o esa_n 57.20_o many_o be_v say_v to_o come_v out_o of_o jury._n euenso_fw-la the_o counsel_n of_o the_o wicked_a by_o which_o they_o seek_v to_o extinguish_v the_o truth_n have_v so_o little_a success_n that_o they_o rather_o serve_v for_o the_o furtherance_n of_o the_o same_o a._n a_o notable_a example_n whereof_o we_o have_v here_o and_o also_o in_o the_o story_n of_o the_o blind_a man_n the_o which_o i_o will_v to_o god_n they_o will_v mark_n and_o consider_v which_o seek_v to_o extinguish_v the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o everye_o city_n c._n therefore_o this_o concourse_n of_o people_n here_o show_v that_o christ_n seek_v not_o to_o be_v solitary_a that_o he_o may_v cease_v from_o do_v of_o his_o duty_n but_o that_o he_o may_v erect_v the_o sanctuary_n of_o god_n in_o the_o desert_n when_o as_o jerusalem_n which_o be_v his_o proper_a seat_n have_v reject_v he_o and_o very_o this_o be_v the_o horrible_a vengeance_n of_o god_n that_o when_o the_o temple_n which_o god_n have_v choose_v be_v become_v adenne_n of_o théeve_n the_o church_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v gather_v together_o in_o a_o profane_a place_n john_n do_v no_o miracle_n bu_n many_o beléeve_v in_o christ_n be_v drive_v thereunto_o partly_o by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o john_n and_o partly_o by_o the_o sign_n of_o christ_n but_o special_o they_o be_v draw_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n c._n they_o gather_v that_o christ_n be_v more_o excellent_a than_o john_n because_o he_o have_v do_v so_o many_o miracle_n whereas_o john_n have_v do_v no_o miracle_n bu_n god_n will_v have_v no_o miracle_n do_v by_o john_n lest_o the_o people_n shall_v have_v attribute_v to_o much_o unto_o he_o and_o therefore_o he_o will_v have_v he_o only_o to_o teach_v and_o to_o testify_v r._n for_o as_o the_o body_n of_o moses_n and_o his_o sepulchre_n be_v hide_v unto_o this_o present_a day_n 6_o deu_fw-la 34_o 6_o and_o that_o by_o the_o just_a providence_n of_o god_n lest_o that_o supersticicious_a flesh_n in_o visit_v the_o body_n of_o moses_n shall_v commit_v idolatry_n even_o so_o for_o just_a cause_n john_n than_o who_o otherwise_o there_o arise_v not_o a_o great_a among_o woman_n child_n wrought_v no_o miracle_n for_o if_o so_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o miracle_n have_v be_v join_v to_o his_o doctrine_n and_o holiness_n of_o life_n the_o people_n can_v scarce_o have_v be_v draw_v from_o beléeve_v he_o to_o be_v christ_n for_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n be_v distribute_v according_a to_o his_o divine_n will_v not_o all_o to_o everye_o one_o but_o to_o everye_o one_o somewhat_o even_o as_o the_o member_n of_o the_o body_n have_v not_o all_o one_o action_n neither_o make_v it_o any_o matter_n before_o god_n to_o be_v endue_v with_o many_o gift_n i2_n rom._n i2_n but_o to_o believe_v in_o christ_n be_v the_o acceptable_a work_n and_o labour_n for_o faith_n be_v that_o only_a necessary_a gift_n which_o justifi_v and_o save_v all_o other_o gift_n whether_o they_o be_v spiritual_a or_o corporal_a serve_v not_o to_o justification_n but_o to_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n this_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o john_n wrought_v no_o miracle_n bu_n but_o the_o lord_n will_v have_v his_o son_n to_o be_v famous_a with_o miracle_n m._n for_o this_o glory_n be_v due_a unto_o christ_n who_o also_o be_v glorify_v wrought_v great_a miracle_n by_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o servant_n than_o ever_o he_o do_v by_o himself_o when_o he_o be_v upon_o the_o earth_n c._n notwithstanding_o we_o must_v note_n that_o we_o must_v not_o always_o judge_v by_o miracle_n although_o miracle_n 7.12_o ma_fw-fr 24_o 24_o 2_o thes_n 2.9_o math._n 7.12_o be_v join_v to_o doctrine_n have_v no_o small_a weight_n but_o all_o thing_n that_o john_n speak_v c._n this_o seem_v not_o to_o be_v speak_v of_o they_o but_o add_v by_o the_o evangelist_n to_o teach_v that_o they_o be_v lead_v by_o a_o double_a argument_n to_o believe_v in_o christ_n because_o in_o very_a deed_n they_o see_v that_o the_o testimony_n be_v true_a which_o john_n bear_v unto_o he_o and_o also_o because_o his_o miracle_n make_v he_o more_o famous_a m._n we_o see_v here_o how_o the_o hear_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n though_o not_o present_o understand_v serve_v in_o due_a time_n to_o know_v the_o truth_n a._n the_o word_n of_o god_n seem_v sometime_o to_o be_v preched_a in_o vain_a but_o at_o the_o length_n it_o bring_v forth_o fruit_n in_o due_a time_n 42._o and_o many_o believe_v on_o he_o there_o m._n where_o do_v they_o believe_v in_o that_o place_n into_o the_o which_o the_o lord_n be_v flee_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o malicious_a wickedness_n of_o the_o jew_n therefore_o these_o man_n be_v so_o dispose_v that_o so_o soon_o as_o they_o see_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o miracle_n of_o christ_n and_o be_v admonish_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o say_n of_o john_n they_o be_v so_o little_o offend_v by_o that_o flight_n that_o they_o do_v not_o only_o still_o believe_v the_o truth_n which_o christ_n preach_v but_o also_o condemn_v the_o malice_n of_o the_o jew_n i_o will_v to_o god_n this_o present_a age_n have_v many_o such_o who_o know_v the_o truth_n will_v still_o retain_v the_o same_o in_o their_o heart_n against_o all_o offence_n and_o let_v which_o the_o wicked_a can_v object_v ❧_o the_o eleven_o chapter_n 1._o a_o certain_a man_n be_v sick_a name_v lazarus_n of_o bethany_n the_o town_n of_o mary_n and_o her_o sister_n martha_n a_o certain_a man_n be_v sick_a r._n this_o whoale_n chapter_n almost_o make_v only_o a_o discourse_n of_o the_o raise_n up_o of_o lazarus_n howbeit_o a_o short_a discourse_n may_v have_v be_v make_v of_o the_o same_o but_o the_o evangelist_n do_v not_o without_o cause_n so_o large_o describe_v the_o same_o for_o all_o thing_n be_v wrighten_a for_o our_o learning_n m._n for_o among_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o miracle_n which_o christ_n
country_n nigh_o to_o the_o wilderness_n into_o a_o city_n which_o be_v call_v ephraim_n and_o there_o continue_v with_o his_o disciple_n jesus_n therefore_o walk_v no_o more_o open_o c._n the_o evangelist_n show_v that_o christ_n flee_v again_o when_o he_o perceive_v the_o fury_n and_o madness_n of_o his_o enemy_n against_o he_o notwithstanding_o let_v we_o note_v that_o he_o do_v not_o so_o flee_v that_o he_o may_v forsake_v his_o father_n calling_n for_o he_o seek_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o tarry_v the_o appoint_a hour_n of_o his_o death_n that_o he_o may_v then_o willing_o suffer_v the_o same_o m._n moreover_o to_o walk_v open_o among_o the_o people_n belong_v unto_o they_o who_o walk_v innocent_o and_o unblameable_a evena_n they_o walk_v secret_o who_o conscience_n accuse_v they_o and_o can_v abide_v the_o light_n but_o either_o for_o shame_n or_o for_o fear_v of_o the_o magistrate_n lurk_v in_o darkness_n this_o come_v to_o pass_v among_o that_o people_n where_o justice_n and_o true_a judgement_n be_v show_v but_o where_o injustice_n and_o tyranny_n be_v exercise_v there_o it_o be_v otherwise_o they_o which_o do_v evel_a there_o walk_v open_o they_o which_o lead_v a_o innocent_a life_n and_o live_v godly_a be_v constrain_v to_o walk_v secret_o this_o happen_v to_o christ_n the_o most_o holy_a of_o all_o man_n as_o may_v appear_v in_o other_o place_n and_o that_o not_o among_o the_o gentile_n but_o among_o the_o jew_n that_o be_v to_o say_v among_o the_o people_n of_o god_n what_o marvel_v be_v it_o then_o if_o so_o be_v it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o a_o christian_n to_o walk_v open_o among_o christian_n for_o the_o tyranny_n of_o wicked_a prince_n and_o magistrate_n a._n but_o in_o what_o state_n be_v the_o jew_n then_o when_z the_o true_a light_n of_o righteousness_n forsake_v they_o into_o a_o city_n m._n christ_n go_v not_o now_o into_o the_o wilderness_n as_o he_o do_v at_o the_o begin_v of_o his_o preach_n but_o into_o the_o city_n never_o unto_o the_o desert_n straight_o after_o baptism_n he_o go_v into_o the_o wilderness_n but_o he_o do_v so_o at_o that_o time_n for_o another_o consideration_n i_o mat._n 4_o i_o as_o because_o of_o the_o conflict_n which_o he_o shall_v have_v with_o satan_n the_o tempter_n but_o he_o at_o this_o time_n so_o shon_v the_o company_n of_o the_o wicked_a that_o he_o do_v not_o abstain_v from_o help_v other_o that_o be_v more_o sound_n and_o from_o preach_v the_o truth_n for_o he_o come_v not_o to_o dwell_v among_o beast_n but_o among_o man_n for_o who_o salvation_n he_o also_o dye_v so_o he_o say_v not_o to_o his_o disciple_n 23._o mat._n 23._o if_o they_o persecute_v you_o flee_v out_o of_o one_o city_n to_o the_o beast_n into_o the_o wilderness_n or_o the_o mountain_n but_o flee_v into_o another_o city_n let_v the_o minister_n of_o christ_n follow_v this_o example_n in_o the_o time_n of_o persecution_n 9.29_o acts._n 9.29_o for_o thus_o do_v the_o apostle_n paul_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v call_v ephraim_n c._n the_o name_n of_o the_o city_n which_o the_o evangelist_n here_o put_v down_o unto_o we_o be_v either_o then_o false_o pronounce_v or_o else_o new_a for_o we_o know_v how_o the_o language_n be_v alter_v after_o the_o exile_n into_o babylon_n and_o the_o city_n and_o town_n also_o insomuche_o that_o it_o be_v no_o merueile_v if_o so_o be_v certain_a place_n be_v reckon_v up_o of_o who_o antiquity_n we_o have_v no_o knowledge_n and_o there_o continue_v c._n the_o evangelist_n here_o call_v not_o all_o those_o his_o disciple_n which_o receive_v his_o doctrine_n but_o which_o daily_o attend_v upon_o he_o and_o be_v companion_n with_o he_o in_o diet_n and_o fare_n a._n who_o he_o have_v choose_v from_o the_o time_n that_o he_o first_o begin_v to_o teach_v and_o retain_v with_o he_o in_o the_o time_n of_o his_o persecution_n whereupon_o in_o luke_n he_o promise_v they_o a_o large_a reward_n when_o he_o say_v you_o be_v they_o which_o have_v abide_v with_o i_o in_o my_o temptation_n 28_o luk_n 22_o 28_o and_o i_o appoynte_n unto_o you_o a_o kingdom_n as_o my_o father_n have_v appoint_v unto_o i_o that_o you_o may_v eat_v and_o drink_v at_o my_o table_n in_o my_o kingdom_n and_o sit_v on_o seatte_n judge_v the_o twelve_o tribe_n of_o israel_n 55._o and_o the_o jews_n easter_n be_v nigh_o atte_a hand_n and_o many_o go_v out_o of_o the_o country_n up_o to_o jerusalem_n before_o the_o easter_n to_o purify_v themselves_o bu_n after_o that_o john_n have_v declare_v the_o cause_n and_o fruit_n of_o the_o lord_n passion_n he_o also_o declare_v the_o time_n of_o the_o same_o of_o the_o which_o we_o have_v speak_v at_o large_a in_o the_o twenty_o six_o chapter_n of_o matthew_n i5_n deut._n i6_n i5_n it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o cellebrate_v this_o feast_n but_o in_o the_o holy_a city_n according_a to_o the_o prescript_n law_n there_o come_v therefore_o a_o great_a multitude_n of_o people_n out_o of_o galilee_n out_o of_o palestine_n and_o out_o of_o all_o jewrie_n and_o out_o of_o other_o part_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o israel_n to_o cellebrate_v this_o feast_n of_o passover_n to_o purify_v themselves_o c._n this_o be_v not_o precise_o command_v that_o they_o shall_v purify_v themselves_o before_o the_o feast_n of_o passover_n therefore_o the_o evangelist_n say_v not_o that_o there_o come_v all_o but_o many_o for_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o any_o unclean_a person_n to_o eat_v of_o the_o pascall_n lamb_n 9.9_o heb_fw-mi 9.9_o m._n but_o we_o leave_v all_o the_o pury_z f●yngs_n and_o washinge_n of_o the_o jew_n which_o continue_v of_o right_a until_o the_o time_n of_o reformation_n as_o the_o apostle_n testify_v i_o 2._o cor._n 7_o i_o to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v cellebrate_v the_o passover_n which_o be_v leave_v unto_o the_o people_n of_o god_n 5.7_o i_o cor._n 5.7_o let_v we_o wash_v ourselves_o from_o all_o filthynesse_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o spirit_n work_v holiness_n with_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n r._n for_o christ_n our_o passover_n be_v offer_v 56_o then_o seek_v they_o for_o jesus_n and_o speak_v among_o themselves_o as_o they_o stand_v in_o the_o temple_n what_o think_v you_o seinge_v he_o come_v not_o unto_o the_o feast_n day_n there_o be_v some_o which_o refer_v these_o word_n to_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o enemy_n of_o christ_n who_o only_o seek_v to_o destroy_v christ_n c._n but_o see_v the_o purpose_n of_o the_o evangelist_n be_v to_o show_v how_o notable_a the_o fame_n of_o christ_n be_v throughoute_n all_o jewery_a this_o place_n seem_v rather_o to_o be_v understode_v of_o those_o who_o seek_v christ_n not_o for_o any_o evell_a purpose_n but_o with_o a_o sertaine_a godly_a desyer_n and_o desyered_a to_o see_v he_o personal_o all_o they_o which_o come_v into_o the_o temple_n special_o seek_v for_o christ_n and_o have_v there_o communication_n of_o he_o and_o although_o they_o seek_v he_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o man_n yet_o notwihstand_v in_o seek_v he_o they_o declare_v that_o the_o tyranny_n of_o the_o priest_n be_v the_o cause_n that_o he_o do_v not_o open_o show_v himself_o 57_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o pharisee_n have_v give_v a_o commandment_n that_o if_o any_o man_n know_v where_o he_o be_v he_o shall_v show_v it_o that_o they_o may_v take_v he_o m._n they_o suspect_v that_o the_o lord_n will_v hide_v himself_o in_o one_o place_n or_o other_o though_o he_o come_v to_o jerusalem_n and_o therefore_o by_o the_o virtue_n and_o authority_n of_o a_o synod_n they_o give_v commandment_n unto_o the_o citizen_n that_o if_o any_o man_n know_v where_o he_o be_v he_o shall_v bring_v they_o word_n that_o they_o may_v take_v he_o that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o they_o may_v bring_v the_o sentence_n of_o their_o synod_n &_o counsel_n to_o effect_v bu_n this_o uncessaunt_a labour_n of_o the_o wicked_a to_o bring_v their_o evil_a purpose_n to_o pass_v do_v no_o doubt_n condemn_v our_o idleness_n in_o good_a matter_n m._n and_o we_o see_v here_o the_o abuse_n of_o power_n the_o authority_n of_o priesthood_n verilye_o come_v from_o god_n but_o not_o to_o the_o end_n that_o he_o may_v make_v his_o subject_n minister_n of_o unrighteousness_n and_o betrayer_n of_o innocent_a blood_n in_o this_o that_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o pharisées_fw-fr command_v the_o citizen_n that_o if_o any_o man_n know_v where_o jesus_n be_v he_o shall_v bring_v they_o word_n that_o they_o may_v take_v he_o we_o may_v perceyve_v the_o power_n and_o authority_n of_o command_a subject_n this_o the_o adjoin_v sentence_n of_o the_o counsel_n confirm_v boath_n of_o they_o be_v so_o great_a that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o no_o man_n to_o resist_v they_o therefore_o wicked_a prelate_n abuse_v they_o boath_n neither_o do_v they_o abuse_v
their_o own_o person_n only_o but_o their_o subject_n also_o for_o so_o they_o make_v they_o so_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lie_v the_o minister_n of_o murder_n and_o impiety_n by_o command_v they_o to_o betray_v innocent_a blood_n m._n if_o any_o man_n by_o this_o place_n demand_v whether_o by_o the_o obedience_n due_a to_o the_o maigstrate_n the_o subject_n be_v bind_v to_o betray_v any_o man_n who_o death_n be_v seek_v we_o answer_v in_o few_o word_n first_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o betray_v a_o innocent_a second_o if_o he_o be_v guiltye_n and_o a_o offender_n who_o death_n be_v seek_v for_o we_o must_v consider_v what_o he_o be_v if_o he_o be_v seek_v for_o to_o this_o end_n that_o he_o may_v be_v punish_v because_o he_o have_v offend_v once_o or_o twice_o let_v no_o good_a man_n be_v easy_o move_v to_o bewray_v he_o but_o if_o he_o be_v such_o a_o one_o which_o ought_v to_o be_v put_v to_o death_n as_o a_o open_a enemy_n to_o the_o common_a wealth_n then_o let_v no_o good_a man_n if_o he_o know_v where_o he_o be_v i2_n i_o kin._n i9_n i2_n be_v afraid_a to_o bring_v he_o forth_o a._n consider_v the_o example_n of_o david_n and_o of_o the_o prophet_n 3_o i_o kin._n i8_n 3_o who_o that_o faithful_a ahab_n in_o time_n of_o persecution_n do_v hide_v in_o cave_n ❧_o the_o xij_o chapter_n 1._o then_o jesus_n six_o day_n before_o the_o passover_n come_v to_o bethany_n where_o lazarus_n have_v be_v dead_a who_o he_o raise_v from_o death_n this_o hisstorye_n the_o evangelist_n matthew_n write_v in_o the_o six_o and_o twenty_o chapter_n &_o mark_v in_o his_o fourteen_o chapter_n but_o luke_n make_v no_o mention_n at_o all_o of_o the_o same_o and_o it_o seem_v that_o these_o three_o evangelist_n matthew_n mark_v and_o john_n seem_v to_o have_v all_o one_o cause_n to_o write_v the_o same_o which_o be_v that_o they_o may_v reveal_v whereupon_o judas_n iscariot_n be_v move_v to_o betray_v the_o lord_n name_o for_o that_o the_o occasion_n of_o gain_n be_v take_v from_o he_o which_o he_o look_v for_o by_o the_o precious_a ointment_n if_o so_o be_v the_o same_o have_v be_v sell_v satan_n so_o prick_v he_o forward_o that_o straight_o after_o the_o effution_n of_o this_o ointment_n he_o be_v reproove_v of_o the_o lord_n go_v unto_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o make_v a_o bargain_n with_o they_o for_o the_o betra_v of_o the_o lord_n b._n therefore_o as_o the_o hour_n of_o the_o lord_n death_n approach_v so_o also_o he_o draw_v near_o unto_o the_o place_n of_o the_o same_o thus_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n lead_v the_o child_n of_o god_n to_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v appoint_v they_o from_o above_o i2_n heb._n i2_n in_o due_a and_o convenient_a time_n only_o let_v we_o follow_v this_o our_o captain_n and_o finisher_n of_o our_o faith_n c._n we_o see_v also_o that_o their_o judgement_n be_v to_o rash_a which_o think_v that_o christ_n will_v not_o come_v whereby_o we_o be_v teach_v not_o to_o make_v such_o haste_n but_o patient_o and_o quiet_o to_o tarry_v until_o the_o opportunity_n come_v which_o we_o know_v not_o of_o christ_n come_v first_o to_o bethany_n that_o three_o day_n after_o he_o may_v come_v to_o jerusalem_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n the_o purpose_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v to_o geve_v unto_o judas_n convenient_a time_n and_o place_n to_o betray_v he_o that_o he_o may_v be_v a_o prepare_a sacrifice_n at_o the_o appoint_a hour_n for_o he_o be_v not_o ignorant_a what_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v i0_n john_n i0_n but_o he_o go_v willing_o to_o be_v offer_v a._n before_o when_o his_o enemy_n seek_v his_o death_n he_o flee_v because_o his_o hour_n be_v not_o come_v but_o know_v now_o that_o the_o appoint_a time_n of_o his_o death_n be_v come_v he_o willing_o offer_v himself_o to_o his_o enemy_n such_o a_o earnest_n desire_v he_o have_v to_o redeem_v mankind_n c._n and_o see_v he_o come_v six_o day_n to_o bethany_n before_o ester_n we_o may_v gether_o by_o matthew_n and_o mark_v that_o he_o tarry_v four_o day_n there_o m._n his_o purpose_n be_v to_o erect_v and_o comfort_v those_o of_o bethany_n before_o his_o passion_n for_o he_o know_v that_o they_o be_v in_o peril_n because_o jerusalem_n be_v so_o near_o a._n the_o evangelist_n make_v mention_n of_o lazarus_n to_o bring_v in_o mind_n the_o late_a miracle_n 2._o there_o they_o make_v he_o a_o supper_n and_o martha_n serve_v but_o lazarus_n be_v one_o of_o they_o that_o sit_v at_o the_o table_n with_o he_o c._n what_o day_n they_o make_v he_o the_o feast_n in_o the_o which_o he_o be_v anoint_v of_o mary_n john_n do_v not_o declare_v but_o it_o seem_v that_o it_o be_v short_o after_o his_o come_n thither_o but_o lazarus_n be_v one_o of_o they_o m._n this_o the_o evangelist_n add_v to_o confirm_v the_o truth_n of_o his_o resurrection_n for_o by_o this_o feast_n it_o be_v declare_v in_o the_o which_o lazarus_n sit_v at_o meat_n with_o other_o that_o lazarus_n and_o not_o a_o phantasye_a or_o spiryte_v in_o stead_n of_o lazarus_n be_v come_v out_o of_o the_o grave_n and_o restore_v to_o human_a life_n r._n for_o this_o cause_n also_o he_o command_v meat_n to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o damsel_n who_o he_o have_v restore_v to_o life_n 43_o mar._n 3_o 43_o and_o he_o himself_o be_v rise_v again_o will_v eat_v with_o his_o disciple_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v not_o doubt_v of_o the_o sertaintie_n of_o his_o resurrection_n 24.43_o luk._n 24.43_o whereupon_o peter_n also_o use_v this_o argument_n to_o prove_v the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n 4i_fw-fr act._n i0_n 4i_fw-fr as_o that_o he_o do_v eat_v and_o drink_v with_o they_o after_o he_o be_v rise_v again_o concern_v the_o exposition_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o this_o stoarye_a until_o you_o come_v to_o the_o nine_o verse_n follow_v read_v our_o commentary_n upon_o the_o twenty_o six_o chapter_n of_o mathewe_n begin_v at_o the_o seven_o verse_n 9_o much_o people_n of_o the_o jew_v therefore_o have_v knowledge_n that_o he_o be_v there_o and_o they_o come_v not_o for_o jesus_n sake_n only_o but_o that_o they_o may_v see_v lazarus_n also_o who_o he_o raise_v from_o death_n m._n the_o lord_n can_v not_o be_v hide_v in_o bethanie_n a_o place_n boath_n never_o unto_o jerusalem_n and_o also_o now_o famous_a for_o the_o raise_n up_o of_o lazarus_n therefore_o a_o great_a number_n of_o the_o jew_n special_o of_o those_o which_o come_v from_o far_o from_o all_o place_n thereaboute_a for_o the_o feast_n at_o jerusalem_n which_o be_v at_o hand_n to_o be_v purify_v know_v that_o he_o be_v at_o bethany_n go_v out_o of_o the_o city_n thither_o that_o they_o may_v see_v boath_n jesus_n and_o also_o lazarus_n c._n and_o very_o the_o near_a that_o the_o time_n of_o christ_n death_n approach_v the_o more_o famous_a it_o be_v meet_v that_o his_o name_n shall_v be_v in_o all_o man_n mouth_n that_o the_o same_o may_v be_v a_o mean_a to_o bring_v they_o to_o the_o more_o fullness_n of_o faith_n after_o his_o death_n bv_v this_o people_n so_o little_o fear_v the_o edict_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n by_o which_o they_o forbid_v all_o man_n to_o join_v themselves_o unto_o christ_n and_o be_v so_o far_o from_o the_o obey_v of_o the_o same_o that_o they_o do_v the_o more_o diligent_o follow_v christ_n and_o inquire_v after_o he_o m._n let_v we_o know_v therefore_o that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o truth_n be_v such_o that_o although_o wicked_a inquisytor_n go_v about_o to_o extinguish_v the_o gospel_n yet_o notwithstanding_o the_o same_o do_v more_o open_o and_o bright_o shine_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o all_o man_n for_o as_o it_o be_v light_a so_o also_o it_o love_v to_o shine_v c._n when_o the_o evangelist_n say_v that_o those_o jew_n come_v not_o for_o jesus_n sake_n only_o but_o also_o to_o see_v lazarouse_n his_o meaning_n be_v that_o they_o come_v to_o behold_v the_o wonderful_a power_n of_o christ_n in_o lazarus_n 10._o but_o the_o high_a priest_n hold_v a_o counsel_n that_o they_o may_v put_v lazarus_n to_o death_n also_o bu_n this_o be_v a_o rare_a and_o new_a example_n of_o unspeakable_a madness_n and_o beastly_a cruelty_n that_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o pharaseis_n consult_v to_o kill_v lazarus_n c._n this_o be_v outrageous_a fury_n to_o kill_v he_o who_o all_o man_n may_v see_v to_o be_v raise_v up_o by_o the_o mighty_a power_n of_o god_n but_o this_o be_v that_o spirit_n of_o madness_n by_o which_o satan_n provoke_v the_o wicked_a so_o that_o they_o will_v never_o cease_v to_o be_v mad_a though_o god_n cause_n heaven_n and_o earth_n to_o fight_v against_o they_o for_o this_o so_o wicked_a a_o consultation_n be_v therefore_o describe_v that_o we_o may_v know_v that_o the_o enemy_n of_o christ_n be_v bring_v
the_o heir_n of_o god_n in_o deed_n do_v enjoy_v the_o light_n to_o the_o end_n when_o he_o say_v believe_v in_o the_o light_n no_o man_n must_v thereby_o gather_v that_o the_o work_n of_o light_n be_v not_o require_v of_o the_o childeren_n of_o light_n for_o by_o the_o work_n of_o light_n we_o be_v declare_v to_o be_v the_o chidren_n of_o the_o light_n bu_n to_o the_o which_o effect_n pertain_v this_o say_n of_o paul_n you_o be_v sometime_o darkness_n but_o now_o be_v you_o light_v in_o the_o lord_n walk_v as_o childeren_n of_o the_o light_n for_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n consist_v in_o all_o goodness_n righteousenesse_n and_o truth_n aprove_v what_o be_v acceptable_a unto_o the_o lord_n 5.8_o ephe._n 5.8_o and_o have_v no_o fellowship_n with_o the_o unfruitefull_a word_n of_o darkness_n these_o thing_n speak_v jesus_n c._n it_o may_v seem_v strange_a why_o he_o withdrue_v himself_o from_o they_o who_o so_o earnest_o desyered_a to_o see_v he_o but_o by_o the_o other_o euaungelist_n we_o may_v easy_o gather_v that_o the_o evangelist_n here_o speak_v of_o the_o enemy_n of_o christ_n who_o the_o godly_a love_n and_o desyer_n of_o good_a and_o simple_a man_n do_v for_o and_o offend_v for_o the_o stranger_n that_o go_v to_o meet_v with_o christ_n follow_v he_o till_o he_o come_v into_o the_o temple_n where_o he_o chance_v to_o come_v among_o the_o scribe_n and_o his_o ancient_a enemy_n 37._o but_o though_o he_o have_v do_v so_o many_o miracl_n before_o they_o yet_o believe_v not_o they_o on_o he_o m._n this_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v only_o of_o that_o multitude_n which_o have_v move_v the_o question_n unto_o the_o lord_n concern_v the_o exaltation_n of_o christ_n but_o also_o of_o all_o the_o unbeléeving_a and_o blind_a jew_n before_o who_o the_o lord_n have_v do_v many_o miracle_n c_o therefore_o let_v this_o hinder_v or_o trouble_v no_o man_n that_o christ_n be_v despise_v of_o the_o jew_n this_o offence_n the_o evangelist_n put_v away_o show_v that_o he_o have_v many_o evident_a testimony_n which_o bring_v authority_n and_o credit_n to_o he_o and_o to_o his_o doctrine_n but_o yet_o that_o the_o glory_n and_o power_n of_o god_n which_o evident_o shine_v in_o the_o miracle_n be_v not_o see_v and_o perceive_v of_o the_o blind_a m._n moreover_o the_o evangelist_n do_v not_o without_o consideration_n make_v mention_n in_o this_o place_n of_o the_o unbéelefe_v of_o the_o jew_n for_o he_o have_v so_o order_v his_o history_n that_o now_o consequent_o he_o come_v to_o the_o declaration_n of_o the_o death_n and_o passion_n of_o christ_n béefore_o therefore_o he_o begin_v with_o the_o same_o he_o think_v it_o necessary_a to_o admonish_v the_o reader_n before_o hand_n why_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o same_o nation_n and_o people_n remain_v still_o so_o obstinate_a and_o unbeléeving_a that_o they_o be_v not_o afraid_a to_o crucefy_v the_o son_n of_o god_n to_o take_v away_o the_o offence_n which_o may_v here_o come_v he_o lay_v the_o blame_n of_o this_o matter_n upon_o the_o obstinacy_n of_o the_o jew_n which_o can_v be_v reclaim_v by_o no_o miracle_n and_o yet_o be_v iustefy_v christ_n who_o by_o many_o miracle_n call_v they_o unto_o the_o faith_n b._n moreover_o when_o the_o evangelist_n say_v according_a to_o his_o manner_n as_o it_o be_v speak_v general_o they_o believe_v not_o on_o he_o 8.30_o john_n 8.30_o he_o mean_v that_o very_o few_o beléeve_v on_o he_o r._n for_o he_o affirm_v before_o that_o sertaine_a believe_v on_o he_o 38._o that_o the_o say_n of_o esayas_n the_o prophet_n may_v be_v fulfil_v which_o he_o speak_v lord_n who_o shall_v believe_v our_o say_n and_o to_o who_o be_v the_o arm_n of_o the_o lord_n declare_v c._n because_o that_o thing_n may_v trouble_v the_o mind_n of_o many_o man_n how_o the_o jew_n can_v be_v so_o senseless_a and_o blind_a that_o the_o visible_a power_n of_o god_n can_v nothing_o move_v they_o john_n of_o himself_o go_v forward_o to_o show_v that_o faith_n come_v not_o by_o the_o common_a sense_n and_o understanding_n of_o man_n but_o by_o the_o singular_a and_o rare_a gift_n of_o god_n and_o that_o if_o be_v foreshow_v long_o ago_o concern_v christ_n that_o few_o or_o none_o shall_v believe_v the_o gospel_n b._n this_o esayas_n prophesy_v it_o be_v mete_v therefore_o it_o shall_v so_o come_v to_o pass_v and_o that_o the_o prophesy_n of_o the_o prophet_n shall_v be_v fulfil_v for_o he_o will_v not_o have_v prophesy_v of_o the_o same_o except_o it_o have_v be_v so_o appoint_v of_o my_o father_n bu_n but_o the_o jew_n be_v not_o such_o obstinate_a personnes_fw-fr because_o the_o prophet_n do_v foretell_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v so_o but_o he_o therefore_o foreshow_v the_o same_o because_o they_o shall_v be_v such_o lord_n who_o shall_v believe_v c._n this_o sentence_n consist_v of_o two_o part_n in_o the_o first_o part_n esaias_n speak_v of_o christ_n and_o foresee_v that_o whatsoever_o he_o have_v speak_v of_o christ_n and_o also_o whatsoever_o shall_v be_v speak_v by_o the_o apostle_n shall_v be_v reject_v of_o the_o jew_n as_o one_o amaze_v at_o such_o as_o be_v in_o obstinacye_n he_o cry_v out_o lord_n who_o shall_v believe_v our_o preaching_n and_o in_o the_o second_o part_n he_o show_v the_o cause_n why_o the_o number_n of_o the_o beléeve_a be_v so_o small_a name_o because_o god_n do_v not_o common_o illuminate_v all_o man_n but_o bestow_v the_o grace_n of_o his_o spirit_n only_o upon_o a_o few_o wherefore_o if_o so_o be_v the_o obstinate_a infidelitye_n of_o a_o great_a number_n among_o the_o jew_n ought_v not_o to_o hynder_n the_o faithful_a although_o they_o be_v few_o in_o number_n no_o more_o ought_v we_o to_o be_v ashamed_a at_o this_o day_n of_o the_o gospel_n although_o the_o same_o have_v few_o disciple_n by_o this_o word_n arm_v it_o be_v evident_a enough_o that_o he_o understand_v the_o power_n of_o god_n the_o prophet_n teach_v that_o the_o arm_n of_o god_n which_o be_v include_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v hide_v untyll_o the_o same_o be_v reveal_v and_o withal_o he_o testify_v that_o all_o be_v not_o partaker_n of_o this_o revelation_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o many_o be_v leave_v to_o their_o blindness_n be_v void_a of_o inward_a light_n who_o hear_v hear_v not_o m._n therefore_o we_o have_v need_n of_o the_o revelation_n of_o the_o power_n of_o god_n to_o believe_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n the_o high_a priest_n also_o scribe_n and_o pharisées_fw-fr saw_n the_o power_n of_o god_n shine_v in_o the_o work_n of_o christ_n and_o so_o do_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o wicked_a jew_n but_o they_o beléeve_v not_o because_o they_o see_v the_o same_o not_o as_o the_o power_n of_o god_n but_o as_o the_o power_n of_o satan_n therefore_o also_o they_o say_v he_o cast_v out_o develle_v in_o belzebub_n the_o chief_a of_o the_o develle_n xi.xu._n luke_n xi.xu._n to_o cast_v out_o develle_v be_v a_o work_n of_o the_o finger_n of_o god_n but_o the_o wicked_a attribute_v the_o same_o unto_o satan_n wherefore_o because_o they_o be_v destitute_a of_o the_o revelation_n of_o the_o arm_n of_o god_n their_o eye_n be_v blind_v and_o their_o heart_n be_v harden_v the_o arm_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n during_o the_o time_n of_o the_o cross_n seem_v to_o be_v shorten_v but_o in_o his_o resurrection_n again_o it_o declare_v itself_o to_o be_v a_o mighty_a and_o outstretch_a arm_n therefore_o we_o must_v pray_v unto_o god_n that_o he_o will_v reveal_v his_o arm_n unto_o we_o in_o christ_n r._n the_o apostle_n paul_n cit_v this_o testimony_n to_o exhort_v the_o faithful_a not_o to_o be_v discourage_v because_o of_o the_o multitude_n of_o the_o unbeléeving_a and_o the_o small_a number_n of_o the_o faithful_a neither_o yet_o for_o the_o same_o to_o forsake_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n all_o say_v he_o obey_v not_o the_o gospel_n for_o esaias_n say_v xuj_o rom._n x._o xuj_o lord_n who_o have_v believe_v our_o word_n 39_o therefore_o can_v they_o not_o believe_v because_o that_o esaias_n say_v again_o he_o have_v blind_v 40._o dead_a their_o eye_n and_o harden_v their_o heart_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o see_v with_o their_o eye_n and_o lest_o they_o shall_v understand_v with_o their_o heart_n and_o shall_v be_v convert_v and_o i_o shall_v heal_v they_o c._n this_o speech_n be_v somewhat_o more_o hard_a because_o as_o the_o word_n import_v the_o way_n and_o power_n of_o beléeve_v be_v quite_o stop_v up_o and_o take_v away_o from_o the_o jew_n because_o the_o prophesy_n of_o the_o prophet_n have_v appoint_v they_o to_o blindness_n before_o they_o have_v either_o choose_a blindness_n or_o faith_n i_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v no_o absurditye_n if_o it_o can_v not_o happen_v otherwise_o than_o god_n
even_o as_o the_o father_n bid_v i_o so_o i_o speak_v r._n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v when_o i_o call_v myself_o the_o well_o of_o life_n the_o quicken_a bread_n the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o life_n i_o speak_v these_o thing_n because_o my_o father_n so_o command_v i_o to_o the_o end_n that_o he_o which_o will_v drink_v which_o will_v be_v fill_v which_o will_v see_v rise_v again_o and_o live_v everlastinglye_o may_v come_v unto_o i_o and_o believe_v in_o i_o a._n for_o these_o thing_n i_o speak_v that_o you_o may_v attain_v to_o everlasting_a salvation_n through_o i_o ❧_o the_o xiij_o chapter_n 1_o before_o the_o feast_n of_o passover_n when_o jesus_n know_v that_o his_o hour_n be_v come_v that_o he_o shall_v depart_v out_o of_o this_o world_n unto_o the_o father_n when_o he_o love_v he_o which_o be_v in_o the_o world_n unto_o the_o end_n he_o love_v they_o before_o the_o feast_n of_o passover_n b._n the_o other_o euangelyste_n in_o this_o place_n bring_v in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o holy_a supper_n and_o the_o whole_a mystery_n hereof_o be_v ordain_v to_o this_o end_n that_o by_o the_o bread_n which_o we_o break_v and_o by_o the_o cup_n which_o we_o bless_v we_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o whereby_o also_o the_o lord_n do_v more_o and_o more_o live_v in_o we_o and_o we_o in_o he_o therefore_o see_v saint_n john_n have_v already_o speak_v of_o the_o lord_n word_n concern_v the_o true_a perticipation_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n in_o his_o sixth_o chapter_n he_o omit_v here_o the_o narration_n of_o the_o supper_n for_o the_o right_n of_o the_o eucharist_n begin_v long_o before_o to_o be_v familiar_a and_o well_o know_v to_o all_o christian_n pretermit_v therefore_o those_o thing_n which_o pertain_v to_o the_o eucharist_n c._n and_o many_o other_o thing_n also_o which_o he_o know_v be_v put_v down_o by_o matthew_n and_o the_o rest_n he_o take_v in_o hand_n to_o entreat_v of_o that_o thing_n which_o they_o have_v omit_v as_o of_o this_o stoarie_a concern_v the_o wash_n of_o the_o disciple_n when_o jesus_n know_v that_o his_o hour_n be_v come_v m._n the_o evangelist_n write_v this_o to_o forewarn_v the_o reader_n that_o he_o think_v not_o that_o any_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o shall_v read_v in_o the_o chapter_n follow_v happen_v without_o the_o foresight_n and_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n for_o he_o be_v ignorant_a of_o none_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o suffer_v a._n judas_n very_o the_o disciple_n not_o know_v of_o the_o same_o conspire_v with_o the_o ruler_n and_o high_a priest_n to_o betray_v jesus_n but_o the_o same_o be_v not_o unknowen_a unto_o christ_n whereupon_o it_o be_v say_v hereafter_o and_o jesus_n know_v all_o thing_n that_o shall_v come_v on_o he_o go_v forth_o therefore_o so_o often_o as_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o truth_n shall_v practice_v any_o thing_n against_o we_o let_v we_o commit_v all_o thing_n unto_o he_o who_o can_v provide_v for_o we_o and_o our_o matter_n well_o enough_o that_o i_o shall_v depart_v out_o of_o this_o world_n c._n this_o be_v a_o speech_n worthy_a to_o be_v noated_a for_o it_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n that_o he_o know_v his_o death_n to_o be_v a_o passage_n unto_o the_o heavenlye_a kingdom_n of_o god_n wherefore_o if_o he_o make_v haste_n thither_o do_v not_o let_v to_o love_v his_o disciple_n as_o he_o be_v wont_a there_o be_v no_o cause_n now_o why_o we_o shall_v think_v that_o his_o affection_n be_v alter_v and_o now_o see_v he_o be_v the_o first_o béegotten_v among_o the_o dead_a this_o definition_n of_o death_n pertain_v to_o the_o whoale_n body_n of_o the_o church_n because_o it_o be_v a_o passage_n unto_o god_n from_o the_o which_o the_o faithful_a be_v as_o yet_o pilgrim_n m._n therefore_o let_v we_o so_o think_v and_o speak_v of_o our_o death_n 5.4_o 2._o cor._n 5.4_o that_o we_o may_v also_o call_v the_o same_o a_o passage_n out_o of_o this_o world_n unto_o the_o father_n let_v we_o consider_v who_o and_o what_o this_o world_n be_v and_o we_o shall_v desyer_n the_o death_n of_o the_o body_n because_o by_o the_o same_o we_o go_v out_o of_o this_o world_n into_o a_o most_o happy_a estate_n void_a of_o all_o trouble_n sorrow_n affliction_n and_o pain_n it_o make_v very_o much_o to_o the_o purpose_n that_o he_o use_v this_o word_n father_n to_o go_v out_o of_o this_o world_n which_o be_v a_o vale_n of_o misery_n and_o full_a of_o wickedness_n and_o so_o pass_v not_o to_o the_o worse_o but_o unto_o the_o better_o and_o not_o simple_o to_o the_o better_o but_o to_o the_o father_n also_o be_v such_o a_o notable_a benefit_n that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v afflict_v and_o oppress_v in_o this_o world_n can_v wish_v for_o nothing_o better_a unto_o the_o end_n he_o love_v they_o c._n although_o the_o euaungeliste_n do_v hereafter_o more_o plain_o declare_v to_o what_o end_n christ_n wash_v his_o disciple_n foot_n yet_o notwithstanding_o hear_v he_o beegin_v to_o show_v afore_o hand_n in_o one_o word_n that_o by_o this_o sign_n he_o will_v have_v his_o constant_a and_o everlasting_a love_n declare_v with_o the_o which_o he_o once_o love_v they_o that_o when_o they_o have_v lose_v his_o presence_n and_o company_n yet_o they_o may_v be_v sertain_o sure_a that_o he_o be_v not_o overwhelm_v in_o death_n the_o which_o persuasion_n also_o ought_v now_o to_o clean_o in_o our_o heart_n the_o word_n be_v that_o christ_n have_v love_v his_o disciple_n which_o wear_v in_o the_o world_n wherefore_o although_o we_o seem_v to_o be_v far_o of_o from_o christ_n yet_o notwithstanding_o let_v we_o know_v that_o he_o behould_v we_o because_o he_o love_v his_o that_o be_v in_o the_o world_n for_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o he_o now_o bear_v the_o same_o affection_n towards_o we_o which_o he_o retain_v even_o at_o this_o very_a point_n of_o death_n m._n but_o the_o original_a root_n and_o cause_n be_v in_o christ_n himself_o and_o not_o in_o his_o disciple_n if_o so_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o this_o love_n have_v be_v in_o the_o disciple_n it_o have_v not_o continue_v to_o the_o end_n it_o be_v necessary_a therefore_o that_o the_o same_o rest_n in_o christ_n who_o love_v those_o that_o be_v he_o with_o unspeable_a love_n unto_o the_o end_n cyr._n and_o verilye_o when_o he_o may_v have_v escape_v the_o cruelty_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o pain_n of_o the_o cross_n he_o so_o love_v he_o that_o he_o refuse_v not_o to_o dye_v for_o the_o life_n of_o all_o man_n and_o that_o this_o be_v the_o most_o perfect_v love_v our_o saviour_n christ_n himself_o testify_v this_o be_v my_o commandment_n that_o you_o love_v one_o another_o 15.13_o joh._n 15.13_o even_o as_o i_o have_v love_v you_o great_a love_n can_v no_o man_n have_v than_o this_o that_o a_o man_n shall_v geve_v his_o life_n for_o his_o friend_n 2._o and_o when_o supper_n be_v do_v and_o that_o the_o devil_n have_v now_o put_v into_o the_o heart_n of_o judas_n iscariot_n simons_n son_n to_o betray_v he_o m._n there_o be_v some_o which_o think_v that_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v thus_o red_a and_o supper_n be_v prepare_v for_o it_o may_v be_v doubt_v whether_o these_o thing_n be_v do_v after_o supper_n or_o in_o supper_n time_n aug._n it_o be_v very_o likely_a that_o supper_n be_v not_o full_o end_v that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o the_o table_n be_v not_o yet_o take_v away_o see_v it_o follow_v by_o and_o by_o that_o the_o lord_n take_v a_o morsel_n of_o bread_n and_o offer_v the_o same_o to_o judas_n and_o that_o the_o devil_n have_v now_o put_v into_o the_o heart_n of_o judas_n c._n this_o the_o evangelist_n have_v add_v not_o only_o to_o show_v the_o wonderful_a patience_n of_o christ_n who_o voutsafe_v to_o wash_v such_o a_o wicked_a and_o false_a traitor_n foot_n but_o also_o that_o he_o seek_v occasion_n to_o use_v that_o time_n in_o the_o which_o he_o shall_v finish_v the_o last_o act_n of_o his_o life_n béeinge_v never_o unto_o death_n and_o whereas_o he_o say_v that_o judas_n go_v about_o to_o betray_v christ_n by_o the_o impulsion_n of_o the_o devil_n he_o do_v it_o to_o express_v the_o cruelty_n and_o hainousenes_n of_o the_o fault_n for_o this_o be_v more_o than_o a_o horrible_a and_o tragical_a fact_n in_o the_o which_o the_o efficacy_n of_o satan_n declare_v itself_o b._n insomuch_o that_o it_o may_v seem_v not_o to_o come_v from_o man_n mind_n c._n it_o be_v very_o true_a that_o man_n commit_v no_o manner_n of_o evell_a whereunto_o the_o devil_n do_v not_o stir_v he_o but_o as_o the_o offence_n be_v more_o detestable_a and_o haynouse_a so_o the_o fury_n of_o
their_o head_n some_o have_v false_o judge_v this_o sop_n to_o be_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n for_o that_o it_o be_v reach_v unto_o he_o without_o the_o action_n of_o the_o supper_n but_o they_o do_v groslye_o err_v which_o imagine_v that_o the_o devil_n enter_v essential_o into_o judas_n for_o the_o evangelist_n speak_v only_o concern_v force_n and_o efficacye_n and_o we_o be_v teach_v by_o this_o fearful_a example_n what_o grievous_a punishment_n abide_v all_o those_o which_o profane_a the_o benefit_n of_o the_o lord_n by_o their_o abuse_n that_o which_o thou_o do_v do_v quick_o r._n christ_n command_v not_o judas_n to_o play_v the_o traitor_n for_o how_o can_v righteousness_n command_v iniquity_n but_o it_o be_v rather_o a_o voice_n of_o detest_a hitherto_o the_o lord_n have_v seek_v to_o revoake_v he_o by_o diverse_a mean_n but_o he_o prevayl_v not_o and_o therefore_o now_o he_o speak_v unto_o he_o as_o to_o one_o past_a care_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v see_v thou_o be_v become_v so_o impudent_a and_o bear_v such_o a_o traitorous_a hart_n against_o i_o i_o geve_v the_o leave_n to_o go_v and_o that_o which_o thou_o do_v and_o seek_v to_o bring_v to_o pass_v do_v and_o accomplish_v quick_o c._n thou_o shall_v perish_v when_o the_o appoint_v time_n of_o thy_o destruction_n be_v come_v and_o in_o this_o thing_n he_o play_v the_o part_n of_o a_o judge_n who_o judge_v not_o to_o death_n those_o who_o destruction_n he_o desire_v but_o those_o who_o by_o their_o own_o fault_n have_v bring_v themselves_o to_o destruction_n already_o r._n for_o christ_n speak_v here_o as_o parent_n common_o do_v to_o desperate_a &_o ungracious_a child_n for_o common_o they_o say_v to_o such_o my_o son_n for_o so_o much_o as_o i_o can_v not_o win_v thou_o by_o any_o gentle_a admonition_n or_o bring_v thou_o to_o a_o better_a life_n by_o any_o benefit_n for_o the_o more_o i_o do_v thou_o good_a the_o worse_o thou_o be_v therefore_o go_v whether_o thou_o will_v go_v thou_o runagate_n for_o thou_o shall_v not_o escape_v unpunished_a because_o thou_o abuse_v the_o goodness_n of_o thy_o father_n to_o thy_o iniquity_n be_v not_o these_o prophetical_a word_n of_o callamitye_n to_o come_v rather_o than_o of_o command_v even_o so_o say_v the_o prophete●_n drink_n and_o be_v drunken_a spewe_a and_o fall●_n and_o rise_v no_o more_o m._n most_o true_a therefore_o be_v the_o say_n of_o the_o apostle_n despise_v thou_o the_o riches_n of_o his_o goodness_n and_o patience_n and_o long_a sufferance_n 25.27_o jere._n 25.27_o not_o know_v that_o the_o kindness_n of_o god_n lead_v thou_o to_o rapentance_n but_o thou_o after_o thy_o stubbornness_n and_o heart_n that_o can_v not_o repent_v 2.4_o rom._n 2.4_o heap_a unto_o thyself_o wrath_n against_o the_o day_n of_o wrath_n 28._o that_o wist_v no_o man_n at_o the_o table_n for_o what_o intent_n he_o speak_v unto_o he_o m._n the_o lord_n so_o speak_v to_o the_o conscience_n of_o the_o traitor_n that_o the_o rest_n know_v not_o what_o he_o mean_v c._n for_o either_o john_n as_o yet_o have_v not_o tell_v unto_o other_o what_o he_o have_v hear_v of_o christ_n or_o else_o they_o be_v so_o amaze_v that_o they_o understand_v not_o yea_o it_o be_v lykelye_o that_o john_n himself_o be_v astonish_v at_o the_o hear_n of_o the_o same_o but_o that_o which_o happen_v then_o to_o the_o disciple_n we_o may_v see_v oftentimes_o in_o the_o church_n namely_o that_o very_o few_o of_o the_o faithful_a can_v discern_v hipocrit_n who_o the_o lord_n in_o plain_a word_n condemn_v m._n furthermore_o a_o good_a man_n may_v so_o prycke_n the_o conscience_n of_o he_o that_o have_v do_v evyll_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o other_o to_o who_o his_o wickedness_n be_v not_o yet_o know_v that_o he_o alone_o may_v understand_v what_o be_v speak_v 29._o some_o of_o they_o thought_n because_o judas_n have_v the_o bag_n that_o jesus_n have_v say_v unto_o he_o buy_v those_o thing_n that_o we_o have_v need_n of_o against_o the_o feast_n or_o that_o he_o shall_v geve_v something_o to_o the_o poor_a c._n it_o do_v evident_o enough_o appear_v unto_o all_o man_n how_o great_a the_o poverty_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o give_v somewhat_o of_o that_o little_a which_o he_o have_v unto_o the_o poor_a to_o teach_v we_o to_o do_v the_o like_a for_o the_o apostle_n will_v not_o have_v surmise_v that_o he_o have_v speak_v of_o the_o poor_a but_o because_o he_o be_v accustom_v to_o help_v they_o money_n how_o christ_n and_o his_o apostl_n use_v money_n m._n we_o see_v therefore_o how_o christ_n &_o his_o apostle_n use_v money_n one_o part_n they_o employ_v to_o buy_v necessary_a thing_n and_o the_o other_o part_n they_o bestow_v upon_o the_o poor_a compare_v herewith_o the_o treasure_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o of_o the_o monastery_n and_o see_v how_o they_o be_v bestow_v bu_n this_o place_n also_o make_v against_o beg_a monk_n who_o counterfeit_v beggerye_n will_v seem_v to_o have_v nothing_o of_o their_o own_o and_o yet_o gather_v together_o great_a heap_n of_o riches_n in_o like_o manner_n also_o against_o the_o anabaptiste_n who_o trouble_v the_o conscience_n of_o simple_a man_n common_a anabaptist_n will_v have_v their_o neighbour_n good_n common_a and_o do_v exclude_v they_o out_o of_o the_o fellowship_n of_o the_o godly_a except_o they_o make_v their_o good_n common_a to_o their_o brethren_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o erroneous_a anabaptist_n 30._o assoon_o then_o as_o he_o have_v receive_v the_o sop_n he_o go_v immediate_o out_o and_o it_o be_v night_n b._n this_o seem_v to_o be_v add_v by_o the_o evangelist_n boath_n to_o declare_v the_o wicked_a cruelty_n of_o this_o miserable_a man_n and_o also_o that_o judas_n by_o receyve_v the_o sop_n and_o by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v as_o it_o be_v by_o a_o certain_a force_n of_o his_o goodness_n cast_v forth_o insomuch_o that_o he_o can_v neither_o change_v his_o wicked_a purpose_n nor_o yet_o abide_v the_o unspeakable_a lenity_n of_o christ_n after_o the_o same_o manner_n the_o reprobate_n the_o more_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n be_v show_v towards_o they_o the_o more_o wicked_a and_o outrageous_a they_o be_v and_o it_o be_v night_n bu_n that_o be_v to_o say_v it_o be_v now_o eventide_v the_o circumstance_n of_o time_n in_o this_o place_n noat_v the_o earnest_a desire_n of_o the_o traitor_n to_o achieve_v his_o purpose_n who_o can_v not_o be_v stay_v by_o the_o unseasonable_a time_n of_o the_o night_n 3.20_o john_n 3.20_o but_o the_o prince_n of_o darkness_n delight_v in_o darkness_n and_o they_o which_o do_v evyll_n hate_v the_o light_n m._n whereupon_o christ_n when_o he_o be_v take_v say_v to_o his_o enemy_n this_o be_v your_o hour_n and_o the_o power_n of_o darkness_n 22.53_o luk._n 22.53_o bu_n judas_n therefore_o choose_v the_o night_n and_o darkness_n as_o a_o convenient_a time_n for_o his_o purpose_n and_o thus_o be_v all_o reprobate_n carry_v with_o who_o no_o admonition_n can_v prevail_v and_o this_o end_n have_v the_o contempt_n of_o god_n word_n and_o a_o impenitent_a life_n 31._o therefore_o when_o he_o be_v go_v out_o jesus_n say_v now_o be_v the_o son_n of_o man_n glorify_v and_o god_n be_v glorify_v in_o he_o m._n now_o the_o evangelist_n consequentlye_o show_v what_o the_o lord_n speak_v after_o the_o departure_n and_o defection_n of_o judas_n the_o traitor_n unto_o the_o disciple_n to_o the_o confirmation_n of_o their_o faith_n c._n the_o last_o hour_n be_v at_o hand_n he_o know_v how_o weak_a the_o mind_n of_o his_o disciple_n be_v therefore_o he_o seek_v by_o all_o mean_n he_o can_v to_o stay_v they_o uppe_o least_o they_o shall_v quail_v the_o only_a rememberaunce_n of_o the_o cross_n do_v make_v we_o a_o fear_v except_o we_o also_o remember_v this_o consolation_n that_o christ_n triumph_v as_o conqueror_n of_o satan_n and_o death_n upon_o the_o cross_n what_o therefore_o may_v happen_v unto_o the_o disciple_n when_o they_o shall_v short_o after_o see_v christ_n carry_v unto_o death_n and_o reproachful_o entreat_v may_v not_o such_o a_o heavy_a and_o sorrowefull_a sight_n have_v a_o hondered_a time_n overthrow_v they_o wherefore_o christ_n provide_v for_o this_o peril_n and_o bring_v they_o from_o the_o behold_v of_o the_o external_a aspect_n of_o death_n to_o the_o spiritual_a fruit_n therefore_o how_o shameful_a soever_o the_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n seem_v to_o be_v which_o be_v consider_v alone_a may_v confound_v the_o faithful_a christ_n notwithstanding_o testify_v that_o the_o same_o to_o he_o be_v gloryouse_a say_n now_o be_v the_o son_n of_o man_n glorify_v m._n he_o speak_v in_o the_o preter_fw-la tense_n whenas_o notwithstanding_o he_o ment_fw-la the_o glorifycation_n which_o be_v to_o come_v short_o
will_v not_o have_v you_o so_o to_o understand_v the_o same_o as_o though_o he_o shall_v testify_v of_o i_o and_o you_o hold_v your_o peace_n by_o you_o he_o shall_v do_v all_o thing_n as_o by_o choose_a instrument_n for_o i_o have_v choose_v you_o from_o the_o beginning_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n therefore_o have_v i_o take_v you_o unto_o i_o that_o you_o may_v testefye_v of_o all_o my_o word_n and_o deed_n therefore_o he_o shall_v geve_v testimony_n of_o i_o and_o you_o shall_v geve_v testimony_n also_o insomuche_o that_o look_v what_o he_o say_v you_o shall_v say_v the_o same_o he_o in_o your_o heart_n but_o you_o in_o word_n he_o by_o inspire_v but_o you_o by_o speak_v c._n now_o we_o see_v how_o faith_n come_v by_o hear_v and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o it_o have_v his_o certainty_n from_o the_o seal_n of_o the_o spirit_n they_z which_o do_v not_o sufficient_o know_v the_o darkness_n of_o man_n mind_n think_v that_o faith_n be_v conceive_v natural_o by_o preach_v only_o and_o contrarywyse_o there_o be_v some_o so_o far_o out_o of_o their_o wit_n that_o they_o can_v abide_v external_a preach_n but_o we_o see_v how_o christ_n join_v these_o two_o together_o therefore_o although_o there_o be_v no_o faith_n untyl_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v illuminate_v our_o mind_n and_o seal_v our_o heart_n yet_o notwithstanding_o we_o must_v not_o seek_v for_o vision_n and_o oracle_n from_o the_o cloud_n but_o the_o word_n which_o be_v near_o unto_o we_o in_o our_o mouth_n and_o heart_n ought_v to_o have_v all_o our_o scence_z occupy_v and_o fasten_v to_o the_o same_o 59.21_o esa_n 59.21_o evenas_fw-la say_v the_o prophet_n esay_n as_o i_o will_v make_v this_o my_o covenaunte_n with_o they_o say_v the_o lord_n my_o spirit_n which_o i_o have_v put_v upon_o thou_o and_o my_o word_n which_o i_o have_v put_v in_o thy_o mouth_n shall_v not_o depart_v out_o of_o thy_o mouth_n nor_o out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o thy_o seed_n etc._n etc._n r._n so_o that_o this_o place_n confirm_v the_o authority_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o the_o comforter_n suffer_v the_o apostle_n which_o be_v man_n to_o be_v weak_a still_o in_o the_o flesh_n but_o it_o make_v they_o mighty_a in_o doctrine_n that_o their_o word_n may_v not_o be_v human_a but_o the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o they_o preach_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n c._n this_o clause_n because_o you_o have_v be_v with_o i_o from_o the_o begin_v be_v therefore_o add_v that_o we_o may_v know_v that_o the_o apostle_n deserve_v the_o more_o credit_n because_o they_o be_v eye_n witness_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o they_o speak_v a_o as_o we_o may_v read_v in_o diverse_a place_n but_o special_o in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n 1._o acts._n x._o 41_o 2._o pet._n i._n 16._o i._n john_n i._o 1._o c._n for_o the_o lord_n will_v have_v we_o to_o be_v so_o provide_v for_o that_o nothing_o which_o apertane_v to_o the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o gospel_n may_v be_v want_v unto_o us._n ❧_o the_o xuj_o chapter_n 1._o these_o thing_n have_v i_o say_v unto_o you_o because_o you_o shall_v not_o be_v offend_v c._n christ_n in_o these_o word_n show_v wherefore_o he_o forewarn_v his_o disciple_n of_o the_o persecution_n to_o come_v declare_v that_o nothing_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v speak_v be_v superfluous_a for_o see_v that_o contention_n and_o battle_n be_v prepare_v for_o they_o it_o be_v meet_a and_o convenient_a that_o they_o shall_v be_v arm_v and_o prepare_v for_o the_o same_o and_o withal_o he_o geve_v they_o to_o understand_v that_o if_o so_o be_v they_o be_v well_o instruct_v in_o this_o doctrine_n they_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o fight_v r._n therefore_o before_o christ_n comfort_v his_o apostl_n with_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o comforter_n which_o comfort_v and_o confyrm_v the_o heart_n in_o all_o adversity_n and_o now_o he_o wyll_v they_o to_o prepare_v themselves_o for_o the_o cross_n to_o come_v lest_o the_o wane_v of_o adversitye_n flow_v upon_o they_o they_o shall_v be_v offend_v and_o slide_v from_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n for_o thus_o flesh_n &_o blood_n be_v wont_v to_o reason_n if_o this_o doctrine_n be_v true_a it_o shall_v not_o have_v so_o many_o adversaries_n and_n persecutor_n again_o if_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n &_o the_o belove_a of_o god_n he_o shall_v not_o be_v overwhelm_v with_o so_o many_o evilles_n against_o this_o offence_n christ_n fortefy_v all_o his_o apostle_n with_o his_o word_n foreshow_v that_o they_o and_o the_o faithful_a shall_v suffer_v proscription_n persecution_n excommunication_n and_o be_v kill_v lest_o they_o shall_v say_v as_o ignorant_a man_n be_v wont_a to_o do_v i_o wist_v not_o of_o it_o for_o this_o be_v a_o old_a custom_n that_o the_o king_n prince_n and_o prelate_n of_o this_o world_n shall_v persecute_v the_o word_n of_o truth_n and_o by_o all_o mean_n afflict_v the_o preacher_n of_o the_o word_n 23_o luke_n 6_z 23_o so_o do_v they_o say_v he_o unto_o the_o prophet_n which_o go_v before_o you_o c._n therefore_o that_o which_o christ_n say_v then_o unto_o the_o apostle_n be_v also_o speak_v unto_o us._n and_o first_o of_o all_o let_v we_o note_n that_o christ_n send_v not_o his_o apostle_n into_o the_o field_n unarm_v and_o therefore_o none_o perish_v in_o this_o warrefare_n but_o through_o the_o fault_n of_o their_o own_o cowardliness_n neither_o must_v we_o differre_fw-la the_o time_n untyll_o we_o come_v unto_o present_a necessity_n but_o must_v rather_o endevoure_v ourselves_o that_o we_o be_v acquaint_v and_o familiarlye_o accustom_v with_o these_o word_n of_o christ_n may_v go_v to_o the_o battle_n when_o need_n shall_v require_v for_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o we_o have_v the_o victory_n in_o our_o hand_n so_o long_o as_o these_o admonition_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v fast_o imprint_v in_o our_o mind_n for_o when_o he_o say_v because_o you_o shall_v not_o be_v offend_v he_o geve_v we_o to_o understande_v that_o there_o be_v no_o perryll_n lest_o any_o thing_n shall_v turn_v we_o out_o of_o the_o right_a course_n but_o hereby_o it_o appear_v how_o few_o there_o be_v which_o right_o learn_v this_o doctrine_n because_o they_o which_o think_v that_o they_o have_v this_o at_o their_o finger_n end_n without_o all_o danger_n when_o they_o shall_v come_v to_o fight_v hand_n to_o hand_n fail_v and_o slide_v away_o even_o as_o ignorant_a man_n that_o know_v nothing_o let_v we_o therefore_o arm_n and_o fortefye_v ourselves_o with_o such_o weapon_n as_o will_v not_o fail_v in_o time_n of_o need_n m._n he_o be_v offend_v which_o have_v have_v any_o thing_n happen_v unto_o he_o contrary_a to_o his_o expectation_n he_o which_o be_v offend_v do_v easylye_o go_v back_o and_o change_v his_o mind_n because_o therefore_o the_o lord_n jesus_n seek_v whole_o to_o exhort_v his_o disciple_n to_o constancy_n and_o perseveraunce_n lest_o they_o shall_v forsake_v he_o but_o rather_o shall_v abide_v in_o he_o the_o true_a vine_n as_o good_a and_o fruitful_a branch_n he_o do_v very_o well_o foretell_v they_o of_o the_o persecution_n to_o come_v lest_o when_o the_o same_o shall_v come_v they_o may_v be_v offend_v and_o so_o fall_v away_o therefore_o we_o be_v here_o teach_v that_o they_o do_v reason_n amiss_o of_o predestination_n which_o do_v exclude_v all_o diligent_a take_a heed_n to_o shun_v evell_a if_o so_o be_v say_v they_o the_o matter_n be_v so_o in_o destiny_n that_o i_o shall_v be_v offend_v and_o fall_v it_o can_v be_v let_v by_o any_o mean_v but_o that_o i_o shall_v be_v offend_v and_o fall_v although_o i_o shun_v everye_o stomble_a stone_n of_o offence_n if_o it_o be_v not_o in_o destiny_n than_o also_o it_o shall_v not_o come_v to_o pass_v and_o so_o all_o caution_n or_o take_v heed_n be_v but_o vain_a if_o these_o thing_n have_v reason_n then_o be_v that_o vain_a which_o the_o lord_n have_v here_o speak_v these_o thing_n have_v i_o speak_v unto_o you_o because_o you_o shall_v not_o be_v offend_v but_o it_o be_v not_o in_o vain_a because_o offence_n may_v and_o ought_v to_o be_v avoid_v therefore_o this_o admonition_n be_v very_o profitable_a and_o necessary_a if_o so_o be_v we_o way_n and_o consider_v how_o prone_a we_o be_v to_o fall_v at_o everye_o offence_n and_o stomble_a stone_n if_o so_o be_v the_o apostle_n ought_v to_o fear_v offence_n who_o have_v see_v so_o many_o wonder_n do_v by_o christ_n what_o be_v it_o that_o we_o ought_v to_o fear_v be_v inferior_a unto_o they_o 2._o they_o shall_v excommunicate_v you_o ▪_o yea_o the_o time_n shall_v come_v that_o whosoever_o kyll_v you_o will_v think_v that_o he_o do_v god_n service_n m._n here_o he_o speak_v of_o excommunication_n by_o which_o the_o apostle_n be_v to_o be_v cast_v
himself_o love_v you_o becase_n you_o have_v love_v i_o and_o have_v beleve_v that_o i_o come_v out_o from_o god_n a._n these_o word_n seem_v quite_o and_o clean_o to_o overthrow_v all_o that_o the_o lord_n have_v speak_v to_o his_o diciple_n concern_v intercession_n to_o his_o father_n objection_n for_o he_o add_v that_o it_o be_v superfluous_a for_o he_o to_o pray_v unto_o the_o father_n do_v he_o not_o before_o declare_v himself_o to_o be_v god_n and_o man_n in_o these_o word_n i_o will_v pray_v unto_o the_o father_n i6_n john_n i4_n i6_n and_o he_o shall_v give_v you_o another_o comforter_n that_o he_o may_v abide_v with_o you_o for_o ever_o also_o saint_n john_n in_o another_o place_n call_v he_o our_o advocate_n 34_o rom_n 8_o 34_o and_o paul_n testefi_v that_o he_o make_v interssion_n for_o us._n 25_o heb_fw-mi 7_z 25_o the_o same_o also_o be_v confirm_v in_o the_o hebrews_n but_o christ_n do_v not_o simple_o deny_v in_o this_o place_n answer_v answer_v that_o he_o will_v be_v a_o intercessor_n but_o only_o show_v that_o his_o father_n be_v so_o ready_a of_o himself_o to_o help_v they_o that_o he_o will_v willing_o geve_v unto_o they_o whatsoever_o they_o shall_v ask_v intercessor_n christ_n our_o intercessor_n b._n therefore_o christ_n do_v always_o make_v intercession_n for_o those_o that_o be_v he_o until_o such_o time_n as_o the_o number_n of_o they_o be_v full_a for_o that_o which_o he_o say_v here_o and_o in_o the_o six_o and_o twenty_o verse_n how_o that_o it_o be_v not_o nedfull_a that_o he_o shall_v pray_v unto_o the_o father_n for_o they_o be_v speak_v in_o this_o respect_n that_o he_o have_v already_o obtain_v his_o father_n favour_n toowarde_n they_o who_o at_o that_o time_n do_v both_o favour_n and_o embrace_v they_o as_o the_o faithful_a beléever_n in_o christ_n m._n this_o place_n be_v dilygente_o to_o be_v noated_a special_o against_o those_o which_o have_v thrust_v in_o the_o intercession_n of_o dead_a saint_n into_o the_o church_n because_o we_o have_v no_o access_n unto_o god_n for_o our_o sin_n say_v they_o therefore_o we_o must_v have_v the_o saint_n to_o be_v intercessor_n for_o we_o even_o as_o we_o can_v be_v admit_v unto_o the_o speech_n of_o a_o king_n before_o we_o use_v some_o of_o his_o household_n officer_n as_o mean_n for_o us._n but_o christ_n do_v not_o in_o this_o sort_n set_v his_o father_n before_o we_o who_o he_o make_v so_o gentle_a and_o love_a unto_o we_o that_o he_o say_v he_o will_v ask_v nothing_o for_o we_o as_o for_o man_n void_a and_o destitute_a of_o his_o love_n a._n this_o fatherly_a affection_n towards_o we_o 24_o esa_n 65_o 24_o the_o lord_n himself_o also_o testify_v by_o his_o prophet_n say_v it_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o before_o they_o call_v i_o will_v answer_v and_o before_o they_o ask_v i_o will_v hear_v to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v not_o doubt_v but_o to_o find_v the_o father_n favourable_a unto_o we_o so_o soon_o as_o we_o call_v upon_o he_o in_o the_o name_n of_o his_o son_n for_o he_o always_o hear_v he_o see_v he_o be_v his_o only_o beget_v and_o most_o dear_a son_n in_o who_o he_o be_v well_o please_v c._n moreover_o when_o christ_n be_v say_v to_o pray_v unto_o the_o father_n and_o to_o make_v intercession_n for_o we_o let_v we_o not_o imagine_v any_o carnal_a thing_n of_o he_o as_o though_o be_v fall_v down_o at_o his_o father_n foot_n make_v such_o humble_a prayer_n for_o we_o but_o the_o power_n and_o force_v of_o his_o sacrifice_n by_o which_o he_o have_v once_o purchase_v the_o favour_n of_o god_n toward_o we_o be_v always_o lyvelye_a and_o effectual_a and_o the_o blood_n which_o he_o have_v once_o shed_v for_o our_o righteousness_n be_v a_o continual_a intercession_n for_o us._n because_o you_o have_v love_v i_o and_o have_v beleve_v m._n christ_n in_o these_o word_n express_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n the_o father_n toward_o we_o show_v how_o faith_n in_o he_o and_o the_o love_n of_o he_o do_v get_v unto_o we_o the_o love_n of_o god_n the_o father_n by_o which_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o we_o obtain_v all_o thing_n at_o his_o hand_n r._n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v because_o you_o have_v love_v i_o and_o believe_v my_o gospel_n therefore_o i_o have_v reconcile_v you_o unto_o god_n that_o he_o may_v be_v now_o your_o father_n you_o be_v make_v the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o faith_n in_o i_o you_o be_v make_v fellow_n heir_n of_o all_o god_n grace_n wherefore_o by_o i_o you_o shall_v have_v a_o ready_a way_n to_o come_v unto_o the_o father_n c._n by_o these_o word_n we_o be_v teach_v that_o there_o be_v one_o only_a bond_n of_o our_o conjunction_n with_o god_n and_o we_o be_v join_v by_o true_a faith_n which_o come_v from_o sincere_a affection_n the_o which_o he_o note_v by_o the_o name_n of_o love_n for_o none_o do_v believe_v pure_o in_o christ_n but_o they_o which_o love_v he_o with_o their_o whole_a heart_n wherefore_o by_o this_o word_n love_n he_o have_v well_o express_v the_o force_n and_o nature_n of_o faith_n but_o if_o so_o be_v god_n begin_v to_o love_v we_o so_o soon_o as_o we_o love_v christ_n it_o follow_v that_o the_o begin_v of_o our_o salvation_n be_v of_o ourselves_o because_o we_o prevent_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n but_o contrary_a to_o this_o we_o have_v many_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n i0_n i_o john_n 4_o i0_n as_o these_o i_o will_v make_v they_o to_o love_v i_o again_o not_o because_o we_o love_v he_o first_o it_o shall_v not_o need_v to_o repeat_v more_o place_n i7_n rom_n 4_o i7_n because_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o certain_a than_o this_o doctrine_n that_o the_o lord_n cale_v those_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o as_o though_o they_o be_v 36.26_o ezech_v 36.26_o that_o he_o restoar_v the_o dead_a to_o life_n 65._o easy_n 65._o that_o he_o make_v of_o stoany_a heart_n heart_n of_o flesh_n that_o he_o appear_v unto_o they_o which_o seek_v he_o not_o and_o that_o he_o love_v all_o those_o that_o be_v he_o before_o they_o be_v in_o this_o respect_n we_o be_v say_v to_o be_v love_v of_o god_n when_o we_o love_v christ_n because_o we_o have_v a_o pledge_n of_o his_o love_n who_o before_o we_o abhor_v as_o a_o severe_a and_o cruel_a judge_n toward_o us._n aug._n therefore_o the_o father_n love_v we_o because_o we_o love_v the_o son_n have_v receive_v of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n that_o we_o may_v love_v the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n 28_o i_o go_v out_o from_o the_o father_n and_o come_v into_o the_o world_n again_o 1_o leave_n the_o world_n and_o go_v to_o the_o father_n c._n this_o sentence_n commend_v unto_o we_o the_o divine_a love_n in_o christ_n for_o we_o shall_v have_v no_o true_a faith_n in_o he_o if_o we_o dydde_v not_o apprehend_v his_o divine_a power_n for_o his_o death_n and_o resurrection_n the_o two_o pillar_n of_o faith_n shall_v profit_v we_o little_a or_o nothing_o at_o all_o except_o his_o heavenlye_a power_n be_v annex_v unto_o they_o therefore_o we_o must_v embrace_v christ_n by_o a_o true_a and_o sincere_a faith_n as_o the_o counsel_n and_o power_n of_o god_n let_v we_o also_o consider_v to_o what_o end_n he_o come_v out_o from_o god_n namely_o that_o he_o may_v be_v unto_o we_o wisdom_n sanctification_n righteousness_n and_o redemption_n m._n for_o this_o cause_n he_o say_v not_o simpe_o i_o be_o send_v of_o god_n into_o this_o world_n 6_z john_n 1_z 6_z but_o i_o go_v out_o from_o the_o father_n and_o come_v into_o the_o world_n john_n also_o be_v send_v of_o god_n the_o rest_n of_o the_o prophet_n also_o be_v send_v of_o who_o notwithstanding_o that_o can_v be_v say_v which_o christ_n speak_v here_o of_o himself_o say_v i_o go_v out_o from_o the_o father_n and_o come_v into_o the_o world_n that_o we_o may_v consider_v that_o to_o be_v in_o christ_n 27_o philiq_n 27_o which_o be_v no_o other_o r_o but_o some_o will_v say_v how_o go_v he_o out_o from_o the_o father_n which_o be_v never_o separate_v from_o he_o and_o how_o go_v he_o out_o of_o the_o world_n when_o as_o all_o thing_n in_o the_o same_o be_v order_v and_o govern_v by_o his_o power_n and_o care_n he_o go_v out_o from_o the_o father_n because_o he_o abase_v himself_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n he_o be_v go_v out_o of_o the_o world_n because_o he_o be_v contemn_v crucify_a and_o slay_v by_o the_o world_n but_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v do_v that_o he_o may_v go_v unto_o the_o father_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o he_o may_v bring_v man_n into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n that_o he_o may_v make_v he_o lord_n over_o sin_n the_o cross_n death_n and_o hell_n c._n therefore_o he_o
lamb_n and_o s._n john_n take_v this_o as_o grant_v unto_o he_o that_o the_o same_o lamb_n be_v a_o sign_n of_o the_o true_a and_o only_o sacrifice_v by_o which_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v redeem_v neither_o make_v it_o any_o matter_n that_o the_o same_o be_v offer_v for_o a_o remembrance_n of_o the_o redemption_n already_o make_v for_o so_o god_n will_v have_v that_o benefit_n celebrate_v that_o it_o may_v promise_v spiritual_a deliveraunce_n unto_o the_o church_n in_o time_n to_o come_v wherefore_o without_o all_o controversy_n the_o apostle_n paul_n appli_v that_o form_n of_o eat_v the_o pascal_n lamb_n which_o moses_n prescribe_v unto_o christ_n by_o this_o analogy_n and_o similitude_n faith_n gather_v no_o small_a fruit_n because_o the_o same_o shall_v behold_v salvation_n offer_v in_o christ_n in_o all_o the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o law_n 37._o and_o again_o another_o scripture_n say_v they_o shall_v look_v on_o he_o who_o they_o pierce_v this_o place_n be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o twelve_o chapter_n of_o the_o pprophecy_n of_o zacharie_n b._n 32.35_o deut._n 32.35_o and_o it_o agree_v with_o that_o which_o be_v write_v in_o deutronomie_n where_o it_o be_v say_v vengeance_n be_v i_o and_o i_o will_v repay_v by_o which_o place_n see_v the_o punishment_n of_o the_o wicked_a be_v defer_v for_o a_o long_a time_n to_o come_v the_o spirit_n signifi_v that_o the_o wicked_a shall_v prevail_v and_o have_v the_o upper_a hand_n in_o this_o world_n but_o yet_o so_o that_o they_o shall_v slay_v themselves_o with_o their_o own_o sword_n for_o the_o more_o they_o prosper_v in_o their_o evil_a doing_n the_o more_o just_a their_o cause_n be_v think_v of_o they_o to_o be_v therefore_o be_v blind_v they_o run_v headlong_o into_o the_o grievous_a judgement_n of_o god_n therefore_o they_o which_o go_v about_o too_o expound_v this_o place_n concern_v christ_n according_a to_o the_o letter_n do_v too_o violent_o rack_v the_o same_o for_o the_o evangelist_n do_v not_o allege_v the_o same_o to_o that_o end_n but_o rather_o to_o show_v that_o christ_n be_v that_o god_n which_o long_o ago_o complain_v by_o zachary_n that_o the_o jew_n have_v pierce_a he_o to_o the_o heart_n for_o there_o god_n speak_v after_o the_o manner_n of_o man_n signify_v that_o he_o be_v wound_v with_o the_o wickedness_n of_o the_o people_n but_o special_o with_o the_o wicked_a contempt_n of_o his_o word_n even_o as_o that_o man_n be_v wound_v to_o death_n who_o heart_n be_v pierce_a now_o because_o christ_n jesus_n be_v god_n manifest_v in_o the_o flesh_n 6.10_o esay_n 6.10_o saint_n john_n say_v that_o the_o same_o be_v open_o fulfyl_v in_o his_o visible_a flesh_n which_o his_o divine_a majesty_n according_a to_o that_o manner_n which_o it_o may_v suffer_v suffer_v of_o the_o jew_n not_o that_o god_n be_v subject_n to_o the_o injury_n of_o man_n or_o that_o the_o reproach_n and_o slander_n of_o mortal_a man_n can_v reach_v from_o the_o earth_n unto_o he_o but_o because_o he_o will_v express_v by_o this_o manner_n of_o speech_n of_o how_o great_a sacrilege_n the_o impiety_n of_o man_n be_v guilty_a when_o proud_o and_o presumptuous_o it_o extend_v itself_o to_o heaven_n and_o right_o s._n john_n ascribe_v that_o to_o the_o jew_n which_o be_v do_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o a_o roman_a soldier_n even_o as_o in_o another_o place_n they_o be_v say_v to_o have_v crucify_v the_o son_n of_o god_n although_o they_o touch_v not_o his_o body_n with_o their_o fynger_n they_o shall_v see_v he_o m._n as_o touch_v this_o see_v some_o thereby_o understand_v the_o conversion_n of_o the_o jew_n 3.15_o act._n 2.3.9_o act._n 3.15_o of_o the_o which_o we_o have_v a_o example_n in_o the_o second_o of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n r._n for_o then_o they_o begin_v to_o have_v respect_n unto_o he_o who_o they_o pierce_v in_o mourning_n and_o repentance_n othersome_a interpret_v the_o same_o of_o the_o punishment_n of_o the_o wicked_a to_o come_v as_o we_o say_v before_o both_o which_o be_v comprehend_v in_o this_o place_n if_o we_o well_o consider_v of_o the_o same_o namely_o that_o a_o remnante_n shall_v be_v gather_v by_o god_n from_o among_o this_o lose_v nation_n &_o shall_v also_o show_v his_o horrible_a punishment_n and_o vengeance_n upon_o all_o the_o contemner_n of_o his_o grace_n for_o we_o know_v that_o they_o be_v wont_a to_o scorn_v the_o prophet_n no_o less_o than_o if_o they_o have_v tell_v a_o tale_n without_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n this_o say_v the_o lord_n shall_v not_o escape_v unpunished_a because_o he_o will_v himself_o defend_v his_o own_o cause_n concern_v the_o rest_n of_o this_o chap._n read_v the_o .27_o of_o mat._n 56._o vers_fw-la the_o twentieth_o chapter_n 1._o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o sabbath_n come_v mary_n magdalene_n early_o when_o it_o be_v yet_o dark_a unto_o the_o sepulchre_n and_o see_v the_o stone_n take_v away_o from_o the_o grave_n hitherto_o we_o behold_v nothing_o in_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n &_o outward_o in_o christ_n 1.4_o rom._n 1.4_o than_o a_o very_a abject_a man_n &_o forsake_v of_o god_n but_o now_o by_o the_o resurrection_n it_o be_v manifest_o declare_v that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o first_o of_o all_o we_o must_v have_v a_o consideration_n of_o the_o work_n of_o god_n by_o the_o resurrection_n for_o as_o god_n begin_v the_o resurrection_n in_o christ_n by_o a_o clean_a contrary_a work_n that_o be_v say_v life_n death_n the_o beginning_n of_o life_n by_o deiect_v &_o cast_v down_o into_o the_o extreme_a pit_n of_o hell_n even_o so_o he_o begin_v joy_n with_o sorrow_n glory_n with_o ignominy_n &_o shame_n and_o life_n with_o death_n c._n but_o because_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o principal_a article_n of_o our_o faith_n without_o which_o the_o hope_v of_o everlasting_a life_n lie_v dead_a therefore_o the_o evangelist_n do_v stand_v the_o more_o upon_o ●he_n probation_n of_o the_o same_o 15.3_o rom._n 4.25_o roma_fw-it 6.4_o 1._o cor._n 15.3_o even_o as_o this_o our_o evangelist_n gather_v many_o testimony_n by_o which_o we_o may_v be_v certify_v that_o christ_n rise_v again_o from_o the_o dead_a a._n the_o virtue_n of_o who_o resurrection_n the_o apostle_n paul_n in_o diverse_a place_n show_v at_o large_a but_o special_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n c._n but_o it_o may_v seem_v very_o absurd_a that_o s._n john_n do_v not_o bring_v more_o approve_v and_o credible_a witness_n for_o he_o begin_v with_o a_o woman_n but_o thus_o this_o say_n be_v fulfil_v 1.7_o 1._o cor._n 1.7_o that_o god_n have_v choose_v the_o weak_a foolish_a and_o contemptible_a thing_n of_o this_o world_n to_o confound_v the_o wisdom_n power_n and_o glory_n of_o the_o flesh_n a._n and_o in_o that_o there_o seem_v to_o be_v some_o variety_n between_o this_o our_o evangelist_n and_o the_o other_o three_o read_v our_o commentary_n upon_o the_o .28_o of_o matth._n the_o first_o verse_n and_o there_o you_o shall_v see_v a_o plain_a reconciliation_n of_o those_o place_n which_o seem_v to_o vary_v 2._o then_o she_o run_v and_o come_v to_o simon_n peter_n and_o to_o the_o other_o disciple_n who_o jesus_n love_v and_o say_v unto_o they_o they_o have_v take_v away_o the_o lord_n out_o of_o the_o grave_n &_o we_o can_v not_o tell_v where_o they_o have_v lay_v he_o r._n although_o this_o woman_n be_v not_o as_o yet_o endue_v with_o a_o perfect_a faith_n yet_o notwithstanding_o she_o right_o endeavour_v herself_o to_o manifest_a the_o glory_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n m._n marry_o therefore_o run_v with_o speed_n to_o peter_n and_o john_n either_o for_o that_o they_o be_v best_a know_v unto_o she_o or_o else_o because_o they_o be_v gather_v into_o one_o company_n she_o make_v haste_n by_o run_v be_v fervent_o affect_v by_o the_o spirit_n and_o because_o she_o find_v the_o grave_n empty_a contrary_a to_o her_o expectation_n forget_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n she_o conceyve_v a_o wrong_a suspicion_n in_o her_o mind_n that_o the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v translate_v into_o some_o other_o more_o seemly_a &_o decent_a sepulchre_n the_o other_o be_v but_o rude_a and_o inconvenient_a though_o peradventure_o fit_v for_o the_o purpose_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v near_o unto_o mount_v caluerie_n where_o he_o be_v crucify_v or_o else_o she_o judge_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v remove_v for_o some_o other_o cause_n which_o she_o know_v not_o of_o r._n therefore_o weep_v and_o cry_v she_o come_v to_o peter_n and_o john_n say_v they_o have_v take_v away_o the_o lord_n out_o of_o the_o grave_n she_o speak_v of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o she_o call_v he_o her_o lord_n though_o he_o be_v bury_v so_o she_o be_v affect_v toward_o the_o lord_n jesus_n but_o this_o woman_n rather_o suspect_v
that_o which_o be_v false_a than_o that_o which_o be_v true_a and_o foreshow_v by_o the_o lord_n himself_o in_o plain_n word_n she_o suspect_v that_o he_o be_v remove_v to_o some_o other_o sepulchre_n when_o as_o he_o be_v neither_o in_o that_o nor_o in_o any_o other_o but_o be_v rise_v again_o so_o in_o doubtful_a matter_n we_o rather_o fall_v into_o suspicion_n of_o that_o which_o be_v false_a than_o of_o that_o which_o be_v true_a bu_n notwithstanding_o by_o this_o complaint_n it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o occasion_n be_v give_v to_o the_o disciple_n more_o diligent_o to_o search_v out_o the_o truth_n for_o therefore_o marry_o magdalene_n tell_v that_o unto_o peter_n and_o john_n which_o she_o understand_v that_o they_o may_v more_o narrow_o discuss_v the_o whole_a matter_n the_o which_o they_o also_o do_v as_o appear_v by_o that_o which_o follow_v 3._o peter_n therefore_o go_v forth_o and_o that_o other_o disciple_n and_o come_v to_o the_o sepulchre_n m._n when_o peter_n &_o john_n understand_v that_o mary_n have_v find_v the_o sepulchre_n without_o the_o lord_n &_o carry_v from_o thence_o to_o another_o place_n they_o go_v also_o together_o out_o of_o the_o city_n because_o they_o will_v know_v the_o truth_n &_o come_v at_o last_o to_o the_o sepulchre_n c._n but_o it_o be_v marvel_v see_v there_o be_v so_o little_a faith_n &_o almost_o none_o at_o all_o aswell_o in_o the_o disciple_n as_o in_o the_o woman_n that_o there_o be_v notwithstanding_o so_o great_a a_o zeal_n &_o fervent_a a_o desire_n and_o in_o deed_n it_o can_v not_o be_v but_o that_o piety_n drive_v they_o to_o seek_v christ_n therefore_o there_o remain_v some_o seed_n of_o faith_n in_o their_o heart_n but_o choke_v as_o it_o be_v for_o a_o time_n insomuch_o that_o they_o know_v not_o that_o they_o have_v that_o which_o they_o have_v so_o the_o holy_a ghost_n work_v oftentimes_o in_o the_o elect_n after_o a_o secret_a manner_n wherefore_o we_o must_v be_v persuade_v that_o there_o be_v some_o secret_a root_n from_o the_o which_o we_o see_v fruit_n to_o spring_v m._n for_o as_o touch_v peter_n we_o see_v that_o although_o he_o be_v great_o fall_v in_o deny_v the_o lord_n yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o retain_v his_o accustom_a mind_n &_o affection_n toward_o he_o whereupon_o here_o also_o though_o the_o disciple_n be_v in_o fear_n yet_o nevertheless_o he_o doubt_v not_o to_o go_v forth_o to_o the_o lord_n sepulchre_n he_o say_v not_o what_o have_v i_o to_o do_v to_o go_v to_o the_o sepulchre_n of_o our_o dead_a lord_n who_o most_o filthy_o i_o deny_v when_o he_o be_v alive_a and_o in_o peril_n he_o think_v of_o none_o of_o this_o but_o join_v himself_o to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o disciple_n again_o and_o retain_v a_o sincere_a mind_n towards_o christ_n such_o be_v their_o disposition_n which_o fall_v not_o so_o much_o of_o malicious_a wickedness_n as_o of_o infirmity_n of_o the_o flesh_n 4._o they_o run_v both_o together_o &_o the_o other_o disciple_n do_v outrun_v peter_n and_o come_v first_o to_o the_o sepulchre_n bu_n we_o have_v a_o notable_a example_n leave_v unto_o we_o in_o these_o two_o disciple_n for_o they_o run_v with_o a_o fervent_a desire_n and_o very_o careful_o &_o diligent_o they_o search_v out_o all_o thing_n m._n they_o run_v i_o say_v both_o together_o but_o the_o one_o be_v more_o swift_a on_o foot_n than_o the_o other_o and_o come_v first_o to_o the_o goal_n hereby_o we_o be_v teach_v not_o to_o look_v that_o they_o which_o be_v chief_a and_o excel_v other_o in_o singular_a gift_n shall_v run_v all_o alike_o in_o the_o race_n of_o christ_n lest_o one_o shall_v contemn_v another_o 5._o and_o when_o he_o have_v stoop_v down_o he_o see_v the_o linen_n clothes_n lie_v yet_o go_v he_o not_o in_o m._n the_o lord_n sepulchre_n be_v so_o make_v that_o none_o stand_v uprighte_a but_o stoop_v down_o can_v see_v into_o the_o same_o even_o so_o such_o be_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o death_n of_o the_o burial_n &_o of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o lord_n that_o they_o can_v neither_o be_v see_v know_v nor_o consider_v but_o of_o those_o which_o have_v a_o humble_a and_o lowly_a mind_n they_o will_v not_o be_v see_v of_o such_o as_o be_v proud_a and_o high_a mind_v yea_o though_o they_o be_v call_v apostle_n bishop_n priest_n and_o doctor_n 6._o then_o come_v simon_n peter_n follow_v he_o and_o go_v into_o the_o sepulchre_n and_o see_v the_o linen_n clothes_n lie_v 7._o and_o the_o napkin_n that_o be_v about_o his_o head_n not_o lie_v with_o the_o linen_n clothes_n but_o wrap_v together_o in_o a_o place_n by_o itself_o r._n although_o john_n come_v first_o to_o the_o sepulchre_n when_o he_o see_v the_o linen_n clothes_n lie_v aside_o he_o go_v not_o in_o peradventure_o stay_v with_o fear_n or_o else_o to_o tell_v peter_n news_n who_o come_v more_o slow_o after_o he_o and_o in_o civil_a matter_n too_o much_o haste_n be_v reprove_v by_o this_o proverb_n a_o soft_a fire_n make_v sweet_a malt_n that_o be_v to_o say_v thou_o must_v not_o be_v too_o rash_a nor_o too_o slow_a but_o make_v haste_n not_o with_o rashness_n but_o with_o consultation_n not_o with_o heat_n but_o with_o prudence_n not_o with_o lust_n but_o with_o deliberation_n c._n therefore_o in_o the_o peter_n who_o make_v less_o haste_n enter_v notwithstanding_o first_o into_o the_o sepulchre_n we_o thereby_o learn_v that_o there_o be_v more_o give_v to_o many_o in_o retire_v than_o aper_v at_o the_o first_o sight_n and_o sometime_o we_o see_v it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o many_o which_o in_o the_o beginning_n be_v very_o hot_a do_v wax_n cay_v cold_a &_o that_o many_o which_o brag_v most_o at_o the_o first_o when_o they_o come_v to_o the_o conflict_n turn_v their_o back_n &_o run_v away_o and_o contrariwise_o that_o they_o which_o be_v think_v to_o be_v cold_a &_o slow_a when_o peril_n come_v be_v most_o forward_o &_o courageous_a and_o he_o see_v the_o linen_n clothes_n c._n these_o linen_n clothes_n be_v as_o it_o be_v relic_n to_o confirm_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o resurrection_n for_o it_o be_v not_o like_a that_o the_o body_n be_v stripte_v to_o be_v carry_v to_o another_o place_n for_o neither_o enemy_n nor_o friend_n will_v have_v do_v such_o a_o deed_n and_o the_o napkin_n that_o be_v about_o his_o head_n m._n the_o evangelist_n be_v wonderful_a diligent_a in_o note_v and_o describe_v all_o thing_n so_o exact_o for_o it_o be_v not_o without_o cause_n that_o the_o napkin_n which_o be_v about_o his_o head_n be_v lay_v from_o the_o linen_n clothes_n in_o a_o several_a place_n by_o itself_o for_o hereby_o the_o beholder_n of_o the_o same_o may_v quick_o see_v that_o none_o of_o those_o thing_n be_v want_v in_o the_o which_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v wrap_v that_o there_o may_v be_v a_o perfect_a testimony_n of_o his_o resurrection_n and_o that_o all_o suspicion_n of_o remove_v his_o hody_n may_v be_v take_v away_o the_o lord_n leave_v his_o apparel_n which_o he_o use_v in_o this_o life_n with_o the_o soldier_n before_o he_o be_v execute_v upon_o the_o cross_n but_o he_o leave_v the_o linen_n clothes_n and_o the_o napkin_n which_o be_v about_o his_o head_n with_o the_o which_o he_o be_v dead_a be_v enfold_v and_o bury_v in_o the_o sepulchre_n when_o he_o rise_v again_o from_o death_n for_o he_o be_v raise_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o immortality_n mind_v to_o come_v no_o more_o into_o this_o miserable_a life_n therefore_o he_o have_v no_o more_o any_o need_n of_o those_o garment_n and_o linen_n clothes_n so_o in_o like_a manner_n we_o must_v dye_v with_o christ_n that_o we_o may_v whole_o forsake_v this_o new_a life_n and_o we_o must_v so_o rise_v from_o death_n that_o we_o must_v leave_v the_o relic_n of_o sin_n in_o baptism_n as_o in_o the_o grave_n a._n concern_v the_o exposition_n of_o the_o eight_o and_o nine_o verse_n follow_v read_v our_o commentary_n upon_o the_o .28_o of_o math._n 10._o then_o the_o disciple_n go_v away_o again_o to_o their_o own_o house_n r._n it_o be_v like_o that_o the_o disciple_n return_v home_o again_o with_o suspend_v and_o doubtful_a mind_n for_o although_o s._n john_n say_v that_o he_o believe_v yet_o notwithstanding_o that_o faith_n be_v not_o firm_a but_o have_v only_o a_o certain_a small_a taste_n of_o the_o miracle_n until_o such_o time_n as_o he_o be_v afterward_o better_o confirm_v and_o in_o deed_n a_o sound_n faith_n can_v not_o be_v conceyve_v by_o a_o bare_a sight_n only_o moreover_o christ_n do_v not_o show_v himself_o unto_o they_o until_o such_o time_n as_o they_o be_v better_o awake_v from_o their_o carnal_a blindness_n they_o have_v show_v a_o notable_a token_n of_o their_o zeal_n in_o run_v to_o the_o sepulchre_n notwithstanding_o christ_n be_v hide_v from_o
prophet_n perfect_v god_n and_o perfect_v man_n the_o mediator_n of_o god_n and_o man_n the_o high_a legate_n of_o the_o father_n the_o only_a author_n of_o perfect_a felicity_n bu_n who_o by_o his_o death_n have_v put_v away_o death_n and_o by_o his_o resurrection_n have_v restore_v to_o life_n the_o son_n of_o god_n because_o among_o man_n there_o be_v none_o find_v meet_a to_o bring_v such_o notable_a matter_n to_o pass_v as_o to_o reconcile_v we_o to_o the_o father_n to_o make_v satisfaction_n for_o sin_n to_o destroy_v death_n to_o overthrow_v the_o kingdom_n of_o satan_n and_o to_o bring_v unto_o we_o true_a righteousness_n and_o salvation_n therefore_o god_n send_v and_o give_v unto_o we_o his_o only_o beget_v son_n a._n for_o all_o be_v go_v out_o of_o the_o way_n all_o be_v beoome_n unprofitable_a 3.12_o psal_n 14.3_o rom._n 3.12_o there_o be_v none_o that_o do_v good_a no_o not_o one_o c._n moreover_o see_v the_o name_n of_o son_n do_v belong_v unto_o christ_n only_o it_o follow_v that_o he_o be_v not_o a_o son_n by_o adoption_n but_o by_o nature_n wherefore_o in_o this_o name_n the_o eternal_a divinity_n of_o christ_n be_v contain_v m._n read_v more_o hereof_o in_o our_o annotation_n upon_o the_o .16_o verse_n of_o the_o .16_o chapter_n of_o matthew_n and_o that_o in_o believe_v you_o may_v have_v life_n bu_n now_o saint_n john_n add_v the_o fruit_n of_o faith_n to_o restrain_v the_o desire_n of_o man_n lest_o they_o shall_v desire_v to_o know_v more_o than_o be_v sufficient_a to_o obtain_v life_n for_o what_o wickedness_n be_v this_o not_o to_o be_v content_v with_o eternal_a salvation_n and_o to_o seek_v to_o pass_v the_o bound_n of_o the_o heavenly_a kingdom_n m._n the_o end_n of_o the_o scripture_n concern_v jesus_n be_v faith_n in_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o the_o end_n of_o faith_n in_o christ_n be_v everlasting_a life_n bu_n for_o both_o the_o prophet_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n also_o say_v 1.9_o haba_n 2.4_o rom._n 1.17_o gal._n 3.11_o 1._o pet._n 1.9_o that_o the_o just_a man_n shall_v live_v by_o faith_n concern_v our_o restore_n to_o life_n by_o christ_n read_v our_o annotation_n upon_o the_o three_o chapter_n before_o the_o 16._o verse_n through_o his_o name_n bu_n he_o add_v this_o to_o declare_v that_o we_o have_v life_n by_o the_o merit_n and_o virtue_n of_o chryste_n for_o in_o show_v that_o our_o righteousness_n come_v hy_z the_o grace_n of_o chryste_n he_o exclude_v all_o man_n merit_n m._n therefore_o we_o have_v life_n by_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v to_o say_v through_o christ_n for_o christ_n in_o christ_n &_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n because_o we_o be_v christ_n and_o do_v apperteine_a to_o his_o name_n if_o so_o be_v we_o believe_v in_o he_o for_o we_o be_v give_v unto_o he_o of_o the_o father_n a._n also_o there_o be_v many_o place_n of_o scripture_n which_o testify_v that_o we_o have_v life_n give_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n jesus_n only_o 2.12_o act._n 4.12_o act._n 10.43_o 1._o ihon._n 2.12_o such_o be_v these_o which_o i_o have_v quote_v in_o the_o margin_n the_o xxj_o chapter_n 1_o afterward_o do_v jesus_n show_v himself_o again_o to_o his_o disciple_n at_o the_o sea_n of_o tyberias_fw-la and_o on_o this_o wise_a show_v he_o himself_o bu_n some_o think_v that_o this_o chapter_n be_v not_o add_v by_o john_n but_o by_o some_o other_o because_o saint_n john_n conclude_v his_o history_n in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o twenty_o chapter_n but_o they_o see_v not_o that_o in_o the_o twentieth_o chapter_n those_o argument_n only_o be_v speak_v of_o by_o which_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v manifest_v at_o jerusalem_n &_o that_o in_o this_o one_o &_o twentieth_o chapter_n those_o thing_n be_v name_v 26.32_o mat._n 26.32_o by_o which_o he_o approve_v the_o truth_n of_o his_o resurrection_n in_o galilee_n therefore_o of_o the_o twentieth_o chapter_n he_o conclude_v the_o narration_n of_o those_o sign_n which_o be_v show_v at_o jerusalem_n but_o because_o the_o lord_n have_v special_o promise_v that_o straight_o after_o his_o resurrcection_n he_o will_v go_v into_o galilee_n and_o there_o show_v himself_o alyve_a again_o unto_o his_o disciple_n s._n john_n lest_o he_o may_v seem_v to_o omit_v any_o thing_n which_o appertain_v to_o a_o full_a and_o perfect_v history_n have_v in_o this_o chapter_n add_v the_o revelation_n of_o the_o resurrection_n make_v in_o galilee_n m._n but_o when_o this_o apparition_n be_v make_v we_o can_v sertayne_o tell_v for_o that_o the_o euangeliste_n speak_v not_o of_o any_o time_n it_o be_v most_o sertayne_v that_o the_o apostle_n according_a to_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o lord_n left_a jerusalem_n and_o come_v to_o galilee_n after_o the_o eight_o day_n of_o his_o resurrection_n wherein_o we_o have_v to_o note_v the_o diligence_n of_o christ_n who_o seek_v to_o confirm_v his_o disciple_n in_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o resurrection_n if_o so_o be_v he_o have_v seek_v only_o to_o have_v make_v they_o believe_v his_o resurrection_n he_o have_v do_v that_o out_o of_o hand_n the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o same_o neither_o be_v it_o need_v full_a to_o use_v many_o sign_n and_o apparition_n for_o that_o cause_n but_o because_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a once_o only_o too_o know_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o resurrection_n except_o they_o do_v percist_n in_o the_o knowledge_n and_o faith_n of_o the_o same_o by_o invincible_a constancy_n it_o be_v necessary_a too_o instruct_v and_o confirm_v they_o by_o many_o sign_n by_o the_o space_n of_o forty_o day_n so_o also_o we_o have_v need_n to_o be_v strengthen_v in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o that_o truth_n which_o we_o have_v once_o receyve_v therefore_o christ_n have_v so_o order_v his_o church_n that_o we_o may_v not_o only_o be_v illumine_v but_o also_o confirm_v even_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n by_o the_o word_n by_o sacrament_n and_o by_o the_o often_o operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 2._o there_o be_v together_o simon_n peter_n and_o thomas_n which_o be_v call_v didimus_n etc._n etc._n c._n saynct_v john_n declare_v that_o christ_n appear_v to_o seven_o of_o his_o disciple_n among_o who_o he_o recken_v thomas_n not_o for_o estimation_n sake_n so_o much_o as_o that_o we_o may_v the_o soon_o believe_v by_o his_o testimony_n m._n simon_n peter_n be_v of_o bethsaida_n a_o city_n of_o galilee_n border_v upon_o the_o sea_n which_o in_o other_o place_n be_v call_v the_o lake_n of_o genazareth_n but_o here_o the_o sea_n of_o tiberias_n this_o peter_n &_o the_o rest_n s._n john_n name_v as_o witnese_n to_o prove_v the_o truth_n &_o sertainety_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n 3._o simon_n peter_n say_v unto_o they_o i_o go_v a_o fish_n they_o say_v unto_o he_o we_o also_o will_v go_v with_o thou_o they_o go_v their_o way_n &_o enter_v into_o a_o ship_n immediate_o and_o that_o night_n catch_v they_o nothing_o bu_n here_o first_o be_v set_v down_o the_o occasion_n by_o which_o the_o manifestation_n be_v make_v for_o when_o simon_n peter_n be_v come_v into_o his_o own_o country_n with_o his_o disciple_n lest_o he_o shall_v be_v idle_a and_o live_v upon_o other_o man_n cost_n and_o charge_n go_v a_o fysh_a and_o take_v with_o he_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o disciple_n c._n and_o this_o travail_n of_o peter_n in_o fysh_v ought_v not_o to_o be_v judge_v unséemely_a &_o unméete_a for_o his_o office_n he_o be_v only_o ordain_v a_o apostle_n by_o breathe_v as_o yet_o as_o we_o have_v say_v before_o in_o the_o twenty_o chapter_n but_o he_o cease_v for_o a_o little_a while_n until_o he_o be_v endue_v with_o new_a power_n for_o he_o be_v not_o as_o yet_o command_v to_o go_v forth_o to_o execute_v the_o office_n of_o teach_v but_o be_v only_o admonish_v of_o his_o calling_n to_o come_v that_o he_o and_o the_o rest_n may_v know_v that_o they_o be_v not_o choose_v from_o the_o begin_n in_o vain_a in_o the_o mean_a time_n they_o do_v that_o which_o they_o be_v accustom_v to_o do_v and_o which_o become_v private_a man_n until_o such_o time_n as_o they_o be_v call_v of_o the_o lord_n to_o do_v other_o business_n the_o apostle_n paul_n even_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o his_o race_n of_o preach_v get_v his_o live_n with_o his_o hand_n but_o he_o have_v another_o consideration_n for_o so_o the_o time_n give_v he_o leave_v least_o handy_a labour_n may_v draw_v he_o away_o from_o teach_v but_o peter_n and_o his_o fellow_n because_o they_o be_v free_a from_o all_o public_a function_n give_v themselves_o whole_o unto_o fish_v bu_n therefore_o herein_o labour_n be_v commend_v to_o we_o all_o and_o idleness_n condemn_v and_o that_o night_n catch_v they_o nothing_o m._n in_o that_o they_o take_v nothing_o it_o
seem_v to_o be_v so_o order_v by_o god_n disposition_n and_o appointment_n c._n for_o god_n have_v suffer_v they_o to_o labour_n &_o weary_v themselves_o in_o vain_a all_o the_o night_n to_o make_v the_o miracle_z more_o manifest_a for_o if_o they_o have_v take_v any_o thing_n the_o power_n of_o christ_n will_v not_o so_o quick_o and_o so_o evidentlye_o have_v appear_v but_o labour_v all_o the_o night_n in_o vain_a &_o then_o sudden_o enclose_v a_o great_a multitude_n of_o fish_n they_o have_v just_a occasion_n give_v they_o to_o acknowledge_v the_o grace_n of_o the_o lord_n bu_n by_o this_o place_n we_o be_v teach_v that_o all_o man_n labour_n be_v in_o vain_a except_o the_o lord_n prosper_v &_o bless_v his_o endeavour_n r._n for_o so_o long_o as_o we_o labour_n wtout_fw-fr christ_n we_o labour_v in_o vain_a and_o this_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o they_o which_o oftentimes_o take_v most_o pain_n be_v most_o poor_a for_o they_o see_v not_o god_n in_o their_o labour_n god_n be_v not_o see_v but_o by_o the_o word_n the_o father_n be_v not_o see_v but_o by_o the_o son_n what_o then_o say_v the_o son_n the_o father_n clothe_v thou_o the_o father_n nourish_v thou_o therefore_o if_o by_o faith_n thou_o begin_v to_o labour_v in_o this_o word_n of_o the_o son_n thou_o shall_v true_o see_v god_n in_o thy_o labour_n who_o will_v thorough_o bless_v thou_o &_o whatsoever_o thou_o take_v in_o hand_n it_o shall_v prosper_v c._n also_o god_n do_v oftentimes_o exercise_v the_o faithful_a even_o as_o he_o have_v do_v the_o apostle_n to_o commend_v unto_o they_o his_o blessing_n if_o so_o be_v always_o all_o thing_n which_o they_o take_v in_o hand_n shall_v have_v good_a success_n no_o man_n almost_o will_v impute_v the_o fruit_n &_o gain_v of_o his_o labour_n to_o the_o blessing_n of_o god_n every_o one_o will_v boast_v of_o his_o own_o labour_n &_o kiss_v his_o own_o hand_n but_o when_o sometime_o they_o weary_a themselves_o wtout_fw-fr profit_n if_o so_o be_v afterward_o any_o better_a fruit_n chance_n to_o come_v they_o be_v constrain_v to_o acknowledge_v somewhat_o that_o be_v extraordinary_a thus_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o they_o begin_v to_o attribute_v the_o praise_n of_o prosperous_a success_n unto_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n 4_o but_o when_o the_o morning_n be_v come_v jesus_n stand_v on_o the_o shore_n nevertheless_o the_o disciple_n know_v not_o that_o it_o be_v jesus_n jesus_n say_v unto_o they_o child_n have_v you_o any_o meat_n etc._n etc._n bu_n the_o disciple_n know_v not_o christ_n either_o that_o they_o be_v far_o from_o the_o shore_n or_o else_o because_o their_o eye_n be_v hold_v as_o be_v the_o eye_n of_o those_o disciple_n which_o be_v go_v to_o emaus_n m._n but_o christ_n most_o friendly_a call_v unto_o they_o say_v child_n have_v you_o any_o meat_n by_o this_o voice_n be_v set_v forth_o that_o fatherly_a affection_n which_o christ_n bear_v towards_o all_o those_o which_o will_v be_v his_o disciple_n m._n christ_n demand_v this_o question_n as_o a_o merchant_n come_v thither_o to_o buy_v fish_n and_o when_o he_o ask_v they_o if_o they_o have_v any_o meat_n he_o mean_v fish_n but_o the_o disciple_n suppose_v that_o he_o have_v be_v some_o other_o man_n which_o come_v to_o the_o lake_n to_o buy_v fish_n answer_v he_o that_o they_o have_v nothing_o 6._o and_o he_o say_v unto_o they_o cast_v out_o the_o net_n on_o the_o right_a side_n of_o the_o ship_n and_o you_o shall_v find_v etc._n etc._n c._n christ_n command_v not_o as_o by_o the_o right_a and_o authority_n of_o a_o master_n but_o geve_v friendly_a advice_n as_o one_o of_o the_o people_n m._n and_o by_o this_o admonition_n he_o prepare_v away_o for_o the_o miracle_n for_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o they_o shall_v have_v this_o watch_n word_n before_o that_o they_o may_v afterward_o know_v whereunto_o they_o may_v refer_v this_o sudden_a and_o unloke_v for_o multitude_n of_o fish_n and_o whereas_o christ_n do_v not_o make_v the_o fish_n of_o their_o own_o accord_n to_o leap_v into_o the_o disciple_n ship_n but_o be_v rather_o will_v have_v they_o to_o be_v take_v by_o the_o inclosier_n of_o their_o net_n by_o this_o image_n we_o be_v teach_v that_o the_o gospel_n be_v needful_a to_o be_v preach_v even_o among_o the_o elect_a by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o they_o may_v be_v save_v c._n the_o disciple_n not_o know_v what_o to_o do_v and_o be_v without_o hope_n of_o fruit_n easy_o yield_v to_o the_o counsel_n of_o he_o who_o they_o take_v to_o be_v a_o stranger_n if_o so_o be_v any_o man_n have_v give_v they_o such_o counsel_n at_o the_o first_o pitch_n they_o will_v not_o have_v be_v so_o ready_a to_o obey_v the_o which_o be_v therefore_o speak_v lest_o any_o man_n shall_v marvel_n that_o they_o be_v so_o obedient_a see_v they_o be_v so_o far_o spend_v with_o labour_n therefore_o because_o they_o have_v take_v nothing_o they_o obey_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n though_o unknown_a unto_o they_o if_o peradventure_o they_o may_v at_o the_o last_o take_v some_o fish_n to_o carry_v home_o with_o they_o c._n howbeit_o this_o be_v not_o come_v example_n of_o sufferance_n and_o patience_n that_o they_o continue_v their_o labour_n after_o the_o day_n light_n which_o they_o have_v spend_v without_o profit_n all_o that_o may_v and_o very_o if_o so_o be_v we_o submit_v ourselves_o to_o the_o blessing_n of_o he_o we_o must_v patient_o wait_v for_o the_o same_o for_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o unméete_a than_o by_o andby_n to_o pull_v back_o our_o hand_n from_o our_o labour_n if_o it_o appear_v not_o profitable_a the_o nakedness_n of_o peter_n testify_v that_o the_o apostle_n have_v labour_v very_o sore_o and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o they_o let_v not_o to_o cast_v in_o their_o net_n a_o fresh_a that_o they_o may_v omit_v no_o occasion_n notwithstanding_o in_o that_o they_o obey_v the_o commandment_n of_o christ_n it_o can_v be_v ascribe_v unto_o faith_n for_o they_o hear_v he_o as_o a_o stranger_n now_o if_o so_o be_v at_o any_o time_n our_o vocation_n seem_v irksome_a because_o our_o labour_n and_o travail_n be_v without_o fruit_n yet_o notwithstanding_o when_o the_o lord_n exhort_v we_o to_o go_v forewarde_n let_v we_o be_v of_o good_a cheer_n we_o shall_v have_v at_o the_o last_o good_a success_n in_o due_a tyme._n 7._o then_o say_v the_o disciple_n who_o jesus_n love_v it_o be_v the_o lord_n when_o simon_n peter_n hear_v that_o it_o be_v the_o lord_n he_o gird_v his_o coat_n unto_o he_o for_o he_o be_v naked_a and_o spring_v into_o the_o sea_n m._n this_o disciple_n belove_v of_o jesus_n be_v john_n who_o write_v these_o thing_n he_o be_v the_o first_o which_o know_v the_o lord_n by_o the_o enclose_v of_o the_o wonderful_a company_n of_o fish_n of_o who_o he_o inform_v peter_n also_o r._n therefore_o it_o appear_v for_o what_o cause_n they_o have_v take_v nothing_o all_o the_o night_n long_o and_o afterward_o draw_v a_o great_a multitude_n of_o fish_n into_o the_o ship_n namely_o for_o no_o other_o cause_n than_o that_o they_o may_v thereby_o the_o more_o plain_o know_v the_o lord_n even_o as_o oftentimes_o our_o prayer_n seem_v to_o be_v vain_a if_o so_o be_v any_o thing_n contrary_a unto_o our_o desire_n happen_v and_o with_o this_o purpose_n the_o lord_n do_v work_v contrary_a to_o our_o prayer_n that_o he_o may_v afterward_o more_o full_o grant_v we_o the_o petition_n of_o our_o heart_n &_o may_v be_v more_o large_o glorify_v in_o us._n moreover_o the_o evangelist_n by_o his_o example_n teach_v that_o when_o we_o have_v good_a success_n contrary_a to_o our_o expectation_n we_o must_v lift_v up_o our_o mind_n unto_o the_o lord_n because_o we_o ought_v biandby_o to_o remember_v that_o this_o benefit_n proceed_v from_o his_o grace_n which_o be_v the_o author_n of_o all_o goodness_n this_o godly_a knowledge_n of_o the_o divine_a grace_n which_o john_n have_v in_o his_o mind_n bring_v he_o to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n also_o for_o he_o know_v not_o christ_n with_o his_o bodily_a eye_n but_o because_o he_o be_v persuade_v that_o this_o abundance_n of_o fish_n be_v give_v unto_o they_o of_o god_n he_o gather_v that_o it_o be_v christ_n which_o direct_v their_o hand_n and_o spring_v into_o the_o sea_n as_o faith_n be_v first_o in_o john_n so_o peter_n biandby_o excel_v he_o in_o fervency_n of_o the_o spirit_n when_o set_v all_o fear_n of_o peril_n aside_o he_o cast_v himself_o into_o the_o lake_n r._n for_o christ_n be_v know_v no_o danger_n be_v fear_v c._n notwithstanding_o it_o be_v uncertain_a whether_o he_o do_v walk_v upon_o the_o sea_n or_o swim_v to_o the_o shore_n let_v it_o suffice_v we_o to_o know_v this_o that_o he_o leave_v the_o ship_n take_v his_o way_n not_o rashlye_a
we_o do_v never_o obey_v god_n with_o such_o a_o willing_a &_o free_a mind_n but_o the_o world_n seek_v to_o draw_v we_o a_o contrary_a way_n r._n death_n be_v always_o unsavery_a to_o the_o flesh_n the_o flesh_n be_v most_o unwilling_a to_o dye_v c._n whereupon_o the_o apostle_n complain_v the_o good_a which_o i_o will_v do_v i_o not_o but_o the_o evil_a which_o i_o will_v not_o that_o do_v i._o 7.19_o rom._n 7.19_o therefore_o peter_n in_o the_o flesh_n be_v unwilling_a but_o in_o the_o spirit_n willing_a to_o dye_v g._n furthermore_o we_o have_v to_o note_v that_o all_o man_n natural_o fear_v death_n nature_n death_n fear_v by_o nature_n because_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o nature_n to_o desire_v to_o be_v dissolve_v therefore_o christ_n though_o with_o his_o whole_a hart_n he_o be_v frame_v to_o the_o obedience_n of_o god_n he_o wish_v death_n away_o this_o doctrine_n therefore_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v know_v for_o it_o stir_v we_o up_o to_o pray_v because_o we_o can_v never_o overcome_v the_o fear_n of_o death_n without_o the_o singular_a help_n of_o god_n therefore_o our_o only_a way_n be_v to_o submit_v ourselves_o under_o his_o holy_a hand_n to_o be_v order_v at_o his_o pleasure_n 19_o that_o speak_v he_o signify_v by_o what_o death_n he_o shall_v glorify_v god_n and_o when_o he_o have_v speak_v this_o he_o say_v unto_o he_o follow_v i_o m._n the_o evangelist_n expound_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n by_o which_o he_o give_v peter_n to_o understande_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v slay_v for_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n c._n this_o addition_n of_o s._n john_n be_v of_o great_a weight_n for_o although_o all_o the_o godly_a aught_o to_o seek_v to_o glorify_v god_n whether_o it_o be_v by_o life_n or_o by_o death_n yet_o s._n john_n think_v good_a to_o adorn_v their_o death_n with_o a_o special_a title_n which_o with_o their_o blood_n seal_v the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n and_o set_v forth_o his_o name_n 1.19_o phil._n 1.19_o bu_n that_o punishment_n which_o the_o confessor_n of_o christ_n suffer_v be_v extreme_a reproachful_a and_o full_a of_o ignominy_n but_o the_o truth_n call_v such_o death_n and_o such_o punishment_n glorious_a because_o the_o holy_a martyr_n of_o god_n by_o death_n do_v glorify_v god_n and_o be_v glorify_v also_o themselves_o by_o that_o eternal_a glory_n m._n the_o evangelist_n do_v not_o say_v by_o what_o death_n peter_n shall_v dye_v nor_o yet_o by_o what_o death_n he_o shall_v deserve_v everlasting_a life_n but_o he_o say_v signify_v by_o what_o death_n he_o shall_v glorify_v god_n therefore_o the_o death_n of_o the_o godly_a which_o they_o suffer_v for_o christ_n sake_n bring_v not_o destruction_n unto_o they_o as_o the_o blind_a world_n judge_v neither_o do_v it_o deserve_v eternal_a life_n but_o have_v only_o this_o commendation_n that_o it_o glorifi_v god_n the_o which_o whosoever_o do_v he_o have_v to_o comfort_v himself_o with_o this_o voice_n of_o the_o lord_n 14.13_o 1._o kin._n 2.30_o apoc._n 14.13_o i_o will_v glorify_v they_o which_o glorify_v i_o bless_a therefore_o be_v the_o dead_a which_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n follow_v i_o c._n h●●re_v christ_n declare_v wherefore_o he_o foreshow_v the_o violent_a death_n of_o peter_n namely_o that_o he_o may_v prepare_v peter_n to_o patience_n &_o sufferance_n see_v say_v he_o thou_o must_v suffer_v death_n by_o my_o example_n follow_v thy_o captain_n m._n therefore_o the_o lord_n propound_v his_o example_n to_o peter_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v thou_o know_v how_o i_o have_v live_v in_o this_o world_n how_o diligent_o i_o have_v feed_v the_o sheep_n which_o the_o father_n have_v give_v i_o what_o i_o have_v suffer_v of_o the_o wicked_a for_o this_o cause_n and_o from_o whence_o i_o be_o now_o raise_v to_o eternal_a life_n and_o glory_n hereby_o frame_v thyself_o after_o my_o example_n hereby_o take_v heed_n what_o thou_o do_v hereby_o know_v what_o to_o look_v for_o and_o thou_o shall_v find_v consolation_n r._n for_o thou_o shall_v dye_v a_o cruel_a death_n therefore_o prepare_v thyself_o for_o the_o affliction_n to_o come_v and_o take_v heed_n to_o thy_o call_n this_o aught_o to_o be_v no_o small_a consolation_n unto_o we_o how_o sharp_a soever_o death_n seem_v to_o be_v see_v the_o son_n of_o god_n offer_v himself_o before_o our_o eye_n with_o his_o bless_a resurrection_n which_o be_v our_o triumph_n against_o death_n bu_n so_o that_o this_o place_n plain_o show_v that_o all_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o be_v follower_n of_o christ_n in_o who_o they_o shall_v find_v see_v and_o learn_v all_o that_o appertain_v to_o the_o discharge_n of_o their_o ministry_n in_o he_o be_v the_o most_o excellent_a love_n both_o of_o god_n the_o father_n and_o also_o of_o the_o flock_n commit_v unto_o he_o in_o he_o be_v a_o burn_a and_o discrete_a zeal_n he_o teach_v sincere_a sweet_a and_o sharp_a doctrine_n he_o be_v most_o pure_a in_o manner_n and_o in_o example_n of_o life_n he_o give_v strength_n and_o patience_n to_o every_o one_o in_o peril_n and_o he_o be_v most_o long_o suffer_v to_o this_o shepherd_n let_v every_o pastor_n in_o the_o church_n have_v respect_n 8.12_o john_n 8.12_o for_o he_o be_v the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n who_o so_o follow_v he_o walk_v not_o in_o darkness_n but_o shall_v have_v the_o light_n of_o life_n 20._o peter_n turn_v about_o &_o see_v the_o disciple_n who_o jesus_n love_v follow_v he_o etc._n etc._n bu_n although_o peter_n be_v restore_v and_o place_v in_o his_o apostolical_a office_n yet_o nevertheless_o he_o retain_v still_o in_o himself_o the_o relic_n of_o human_a nature_n and_o imbecility_n which_o procee_v from_o the_o corruption_n of_o sin_n m._n for_o when_o he_o be_v command_v to_o follow_v the_o lord_n he_o do_v not_o so_o much_o consider_v that_o vocation_n as_o he_o have_v respect_n unto_o other_o bu_n for_o look_v behind_o he_o he_o see_v john_n follow_v and_o see_v he_o know_v that_fw-mi he_o be_v more_o dear_a unto_o he_o than_o the_o rest_n he_o great_o marvel_v what_o death_n he_o shall_v dye_v m._n whereupon_o he_o move_v the_o question_n concern_v his_o lot_n say_v lord_n what_o shall_v he_o do_v for_o he_o think_v it_o very_o absurd_a that_o he_o shall_v be_v call_v alone_o and_o john_n omit_v who_o christ_n have_v always_o so_o great_o love_v a._n concern_v the_o leave_n of_o john_n on_o christ_n breast_n read_v the_o .23_o verse_n of_o the_o .13_o chap._n before_o lord_n what_o shall_v he_o do_v c._n we_o have_v here_o in_o peter_n a_o example_n not_o only_o of_o our_o superfluous_a but_o also_o of_o hurtful_a curiosity_n when_o as_o by_o the_o the_o behold_v of_o other_o we_o be_v draw_v away_o from_o our_o office_n for_o we_o be_v by_o nature_n severe_a and_o narrow_a examiner_n rather_o of_o other_o man_n life_n than_o our_o own_o do_v thereby_o seek_v to_o shift_v off_o ourselves_o for_o by_o this_o colour_n of_o excuse_n we_o willing_o deceive_v ourselves_o namely_o that_o other_o be_v no_o better_a than_o we_o as_o though_o their_o sloth_n and_o folly_n be_v our_o discharge_n scarce_o the_o hundred_o person_n do_v consider_v this_o say_n of_o s._n paul_n 6.5_o gal._n 6.5_o every_o man_n shall_v bear_v his_o own_o burden_n wherefore_o in_o the_o person_n of_o one_o man_n this_o be_v a_o general_a reprehension_n of_o all_o those_o which_o look_v round_o about_o they_o how_o other_o man_n behave_v themselves_o but_o neglect_v their_o own_o duty_n and_o charge_n which_o god_n enjoin_v they_o faithful_o to_o execute_v of_o ten_o god_n will_v choose_v one_o who_o he_o will_v exercise_v either_o with_o exceed_a sorrow_n or_o with_o gréevous_a labour_n the_o other_o nine_o he_o will_v suffer_v to_o live_v in_o peace_n or_o at_o least_o will_v light_o exercise_v they_o he_o use_v not_o all_o man_n alike_o but_o tri_v every_o one_o as_o it_o seem_v good_a unto_o he_o see_v therefore_o there_o be_v diverse_a kind_n of_o christian_a warfare_n let_v every_o man_n learn_v to_o keep_v his_o own_o ray_n and_o order_n lest_o as_o idle_a person_n we_o inquire_v after_o this_o or_o that_o provoke_v our_o heavenly_a captain_n to_o displeasure_n against_o we_o to_o who_o we_o ought_v to_o be_v in_o such_o subjection_n that_o we_o shall_v forget_v all_o such_o thing_n as_o appertain_v not_o to_o the_o do_v of_o our_o duty_n 22._o jesus_n say_v unto_o he_o if_o i_o will_v have_v he_o to_o tarry_v till_o i_o come_v what_o be_v that_o to_o thou_o follow_v thou_o i_o bu_n the_o lord_n jesus_n reprehend_v the_o curious_a and_o unprofitable_a demand_n of_o peter_n bu_n and_o call_v he_o into_o the_o way_n in_o the_o which_o he_o must_v go_v will_v he_o to_o consider_v not_o the_o burden_n of_o other_o man_n but_o what_o he_o himself_o be_v
enjoin_v to_o bear_v as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v it_o make_v no_o matter_n unto_o thou_o neither_o haste_n thou_o any_o thing_n to_o do_v to_o demand_v what_o shall_v become_v of_o thy_o fellow_n leave_v this_o to_o my_o will_n only_o consider_v of_o thyself_o and_o prepare_v thyself_o to_o follow_v whither_o soever_o thou_o be_v call_v r._n have_v regard_n to_o thy_o own_o call_n and_o not_o to_o a_o other_o man_n i_o will_v have_v a_o regard_n to_o other_o myself_o if_o he_o abide_v and_o suffer_v no_o cruel_a death_n he_o abide_v to_o i_o bu_n yea_o if_o it_o be_v my_o will_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o dye_v but_o to_o abide_v in_o the_o state_n he_o be_v in_o now_o until_o i_o come_v to_o judgement_n and_o that_o the_o same_o shall_v be_v good_a for_o he_o what_o have_v thou_o to_o do_v with_o it_o i_o will_v have_v thou_o nor_o no_o man_n else_o curious_o to_o search_v out_o god_n counsel_n or_o to_o discuss_v other_o man_n calling_n john_n be_v i_o and_o i_o will_v use_v he_o at_o my_o pleasure_n therefore_o that_o which_o i_o say_v even_o now_o i_o say_v again_o 9.62_o luke_n 9.62_o no_o man_n put_v his_o hand_n to_o they_o plough_n and_o look_v back_o be_v meet_v for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n r._n i_o will_v to_o god_n that_o this_o sentence_n be_v imprint_v in_o all_o man_n mind_n that_o every_o one_o may_v learn_v to_o have_v his_o duty_n in_o remembrance_n for_o what_o be_v thou_o say_v the_o apostle_n which_o iudge_v another_o man_n servant_n 14.4_o rom._n 14.4_o to_o his_o own_o master_n he_o stand_v or_o fall_v m._n notwithstanding_o we_o must_v here_o distinguish_v between_o that_o care_n which_o procee_v of_o curiosity_n curiosity_n care_n procee_v of_o love_n and_o of_o curiosity_n &_o that_o which_o procee_v of_o love_n c._n for_o all_o care_n for_o our_o brethren_n be_v not_o superfluous_a if_o it_o observe_v a_o mean_a then_o be_v it_o not_o curiosity_n but_o a_o good_a care_n m._n this_o be_v curiosity_n to_o search_v and_o seek_v how_o long_o this_o or_o that_o man_n shall_v live_v and_o whether_o he_o shall_v be_v scotfree_a or_o poor_a the_o which_o many_o do_v by_o curious_a art_n rather_o than_o attend_v and_o regard_v christian_n charity_n let_v we_o say_v if_o so_o be_v god_n will_v have_v this_o prince_n or_o that_o tyrant_n to_o rain_v until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n what_o be_v it_o to_o we_o let_v we_o follow_v christ_n our_o captain_n c._n to_o be_v short_a let_v every_o one_o of_o we_o have_v respect_n unto_o our_o neighbour_n to_o see_v if_o we_o can_v draw_v they_o unto_o christ_n rather_o than_o by_o their_o offence_n to_o do_v evel_a ourselves_o until_o i_o come_v 1.11_o math._n 25.31_o act._n 1.11_o m._n therefore_o he_o geve_v we_o to_o understand_v that_o he_o will_v come_v again_o into_o this_o world_n the_o which_o also_o in_o other_o place_n be_v more_o plain_o affirm_v 23._o then_o go_v this_o say_n abroad_o among_o the_o brethren_n that_o the_o same_o disciple_n shall_v not_o dye_v etc._n etc._n c._n the_o evangelist_n declare_v that_o a_o error_n spring_v up_o among_o the_o disciple_n by_o mistake_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n that_o john_n shall_v never_o dye_v m._n the_o evangelist_n therefore_o think_v good_a to_o interpret_v true_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n not_o understand_v but_o rash_o take_v lest_o when_o he_o himself_o be_v dead_a any_o note_n of_o untruth_n may_v with_o offence_n be_v ascribe_v unto_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n among_o the_o brethren_n c._n he_o mean_v these_o apostle_n which_o be_v present_a at_o that_o say_n not_o that_o the_o name_n of_o brethren_n appertayneeh_a to_o they_o alone_o bu_n for_o all_o christian_n be_v call_v brethren_n but_o because_o they_o be_v the_o sanctify_v first_o fruit_n of_o unity_n it_o may_v also_o be_v that_o other_o beside_o the_o eleven_o which_o be_v present_a be_v note_v bu_n hereby_o we_o gather_v how_o apt_a and_o ready_a man_n be_v to_o err_v for_o if_o so_o be_v those_o man_n which_o be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o first_o pillar_n of_o the_o church_n stumble_v at_o such_o a_o straw_n what_o will_v we_o do_v which_o have_v such_o great_a stomble_a block_n lay_v in_o our_o way_n c._o howbeit_o it_o be_v like_o that_o this_o error_n continue_v no_o long_o among_o they_o than_o until_o they_o be_v replenish_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n bu_n error_n spring_v of_o diverse_a cause_n cause_n error_n spring_v of_o diverse_a cause_n but_o special_o of_o these_o two_o that_o be_v to_o say_v either_o of_o our_o affection_n which_o judge_v not_o right_o of_o the_o eternal_a majesty_n of_o god_n or_o else_o by_o some_o small_a wrest_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n of_o wrong_a affection_n towards_o jesus_n thus_o the_o disciple_n gather_v jesus_n love_v john_n therefore_o john_n shall_v not_o dye_v for_o those_o who_o human_a affection_n love_v it_o wish_v to_o live_v for_o ever_o to_o the_o wrest_n of_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n this_o appertain_v because_o they_o absolute_o pronounce_v that_o john_n shall_v abide_v in_o his_o present_a state_n until_o christ_n come_v again_o whereas_o he_o speak_v conditional_o if_o i_o will_v have_v he_o tarry_v till_o i_o come_v what_o be_v that_o to_o thou_o c._n thus_o very_o profitable_o christ_n teach_v we_o to_o our_o edification_n and_o that_o also_o very_o plain_o but_o we_o by_o our_o corrupt_a and_o wicked_a imagination_n do_v obscure_a &_o darken_v the_o light_n christ_n will_v not_o pronounce_v any_o thing_n certain_a concern_v john_n but_o only_o approve_v that_o he_o have_v full_a power_n of_o life_n and_o death_n so_o that_o of_o itself_o it_o be_v a_o simple_a and_o profitable_a doctrine_n but_o the_o disciple_n devise_v and_o imagine_v more_o than_o be_v speak_v wherefore_o that_o we_o may_v be_v safe_a from_o the_o same_o peril_n let_v we_o learn_v soberlye_o to_o conceyve_v that_o which_o be_v speak_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n m._n also_o by_o the_o present_a care_n of_o the_o evangelist_n we_o be_v teach_v how_o circumspect_a we_o ought_v to_o be_v in_o read_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n the_o which_o one_o letter_n be_v add_v or_o take_v away_o or_o change_v may_v be_v so_o pervert_v that_o they_o will_v not_o testefye_v a_o truth_n but_o a_o lie_n and_o will_v serve_v to_o maintain_v contention_n special_o see_v it_o be_v a_o very_a hard_a matter_n to_o take_v away_o quite_o out_o of_o man_n mind_n a_o error_n once_o conceyve_v if_o so_o be_v it_o have_v any_o show_n of_o authority_n from_o christ_n the_o which_o happen_v in_o this_o cause_n concern_v the_o death_n of_o john_n for_o such_o be_v the_o wickedness_n of_o man_n nature_n that_o it_o rush_v headlong_o into_o all_o vanity_n whereupon_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o this_o error_n also_o of_o the_o which_o the_o evangelist_n have_v warn_v we_o to_o take_v heed_n be_v yet_o in_o the_o world_n for_o there_o want_v not_o some_o which_o deny_v that_o he_o be_v dead_a m._n but_o have_v feign_v that_o when_o he_o have_v command_v his_o sepulchre_n to_o be_v dig_v and_o be_v put_v into_o the_o same_o the_o next_o day_n after_o it_o be_v find_v empty_a john_n be_v carry_v alive_a corporallye_o into_o paradise_n to_o enoch_n and_o elias_n who_o shall_v come_v at_o the_o latter_a day_n to_o war_n against_o antechrist_n c._n wherefore_o we_o see_v that_o there_o be_v no_o end_n of_o err_a except_o we_o simple_o embrace_v that_o which_o the_o lord_n have_v deliver_v &_o reject_v all_o other_o imagination_n comment_n and_o surmise_n bu_n these_o thing_n teach_v we_o not_o to_o trust_v to_o much_o to_o our_o own_o wisdom_n lest_o we_o light_o &_o necligent_o handle_v the_o scripture_n but_o rather_o let_v we_o read_v they_o in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n and_o with_o often_o prayer_n know_v that_o we_o be_v full_a of_o error_n &_o darkness_n but_o do_v receive_v the_o true_a &_o perfect_v illumination_n from_o above_o 24._o the_o same_o discyple_a be_v he_o which_o testefi_v of_o these_o thing_n &_o write_v these_o thing_n and_o we_o know_v that_o his_o testymonye_n be_v true_a bu_n this_o be_v the_o conclusion_n &_o appendix_n of_o this_o divine_a history_n by_o which_o saint_n john_n happy_o knit_v up_o the_o work_n c._n and_o because_o hitherto_o he_o have_v make_v mention_n of_o himself_o under_o the_o three_o person_z he_o now_o express_v that_o he_o be_v even_o the_o very_a same_o to_o the_o end_n he_o be_v a_o eye_n witness_n and_o one_o that_o speak_v by_o experience_n may_v bring_v more_o weight_n &_o authority_n to_o his_o word_n bu_n there_o be_v great_a modesty_n to_o be_v follow_v in_o his_o word_n for_o he_o neither_o speak_v nor_o write_v any_o thing_n of_o himself_o arrogant_o or_o bold_o he_o
call_v himself_o a_o disciple_n not_o a_o doctor_n who_o notwitstand_v far_o excel_v all_o the_o doctor_n and_o teacher_n in_o the_o world_n let_v then_o those_o greedy_a hunter_n after_o vain_a glory_n blush_v and_o be_v ashamed_a who_o be_v content_v with_o no_o tytel_n be_v they_o never_o so_o honourabie_n and_o large_a john_n the_o baptiste_n call_v himself_o a_o voice_n cry_v in_o the_o wilderness_n peter_n and_o paul_n which_o be_v the_o light_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n name_n themselves_o the_o servant_n and_o minister_n of_o jesu_n christ_n but_o john_n also_o call_v himself_o a_o witness_n because_o the_o lord_n have_v say_v you_o shall_v be_v witness_n of_o these_o thing_n a_o witness_n speak_v nothing_o of_o his_o own_o but_o faithful_o do_v declare_v those_o thing_n only_o which_o he_o have_v either_o see_v or_o hear_v wherefore_o that_o which_o he_o have_v hear_v of_o the_o lord_n and_o have_v see_v he_o do_v and_o suffer_v simple_o and_o trulye_o evenas_a they_o be_v speak_v and_o do_v he_o have_v utter_v and_o declare_v m._n this_o therefore_o be_v the_o very_a same_o disciple_n who_o he_o have_v so_o often_o say_v be_v special_o belove_v of_o the_o lord_n and_o yet_o have_v he_o not_o once_o in_o all_o his_o book_n set_v to_o his_o name_n lest_o he_o may_v incur_v the_o suspicion_n of_o arrowgancy_n yet_o notwithstanding_o it_o be_v not_o too_o be_v forbid_v that_o the_o name_n of_o author_n shall_v be_v set_v unto_o their_o book_n the_o which_o may_v stand_v too_o very_o good_a use_n and_o purpose_n so_o that_o vain_a glory_n be_v not_o seek_v and_o we_o know_v that_o his_o testimony_n be_v true_a bu_n now_o saint_n john_n very-serious_o affirm_v that_o he_o have_v faithful_o and_o true_o deliver_v the_o pure_a &_o simple_a truth_n even_o as_o in_o another_o place_n also_o that_o which_o we_o have_v hear_v which_o we_o have_v see_v with_o our_o eye_n which_o we_o have_v look_v upon_o ▪_o and_o our_o hand_n have_v handle_v of_o the_o word_n of_o life_n we_o show_v unto_o you_o for_o his_o meaning_n be_v that_o the_o apostolical_a doctrine_n be_v most_o true_a and_o approve_a even_o as_o say_v peter_n we_o have_v not_o follow_v deceitfall_n fable_n when_o we_o open_v unto_o you_o the_o power_n and_o come_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n but_o with_o our_o eye_n we_o see_v his_o majesty_n a._n concern_v the_o rest_n which_o may_v be_v bring_v to_o the_o exposition_n of_o this_o place_n read_v the_o .35_o verse_n of_o the_o .19_o chapter_n before_o for_o there_o he_o geeve_v the_o like_a testimony_n to_o that_o which_o he_o have_v write_v 55._o there_o be_v also_o many_o other_o thing_n which_o jesus_n do_v the_o which_o if_o they_o shall_v be_v write_v every_o one_o i_o suppose_v the_o world_n can_v not_o contain_v the_o book_n that_o shall_v be_v write_v 20.30_o john_n 20.30_o bu_n this_o place_n agree_v with_o that_o which_o the_o apostle_n say_v before_o how_o that_o not_o all_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o lord_n resurrection_n be_v write_v but_o those_o only_o which_o be_v sufficient_a to_o persuade_v man_n to_o believe_v in_o the_o lord_n jesus_n that_o by_o he_o they_o attain_v to_o life_n everlasting_a and_o true_a blessedness_n m._n the_o very_a same_o he_o seem_v now_o to_o repeat_v again_o but_o yet_o not_o without_o some_o difference_n before_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o sign_n after_o the_o resurrection_n but_o here_o he_o speak_v of_o those_o sign_n general_o which_o christ_n wrought_v and_o show_v from_o the_o first_o to_o the_o last_o all_o the_o which_o he_o say_v be_v not_o write_v neither_o in_o this_o book_n nor_o in_o any_o other_o c._n therefore_o least_o any_o man_n shall_v suspect_v his_o word_n as_o one_o speak_v pertial_o because_o he_o be_v love_v of_o christ_n he_o cut_v off_o this_o objection_n say_v that_o he_o have_v omit_v &_o overpass_o more_o than_o he_o have_v write_v neither_o do_v he_o speak_v of_o every_o action_n of_o christ_n but_o of_o those_o which_o appertain_v to_o his_o public_a office_n m._n and_o the_o reason_n hereof_o he_o say_v be_v the_o innumerable_a multitude_n of_o christ_n deed_n say_v that_o the_o whole_a world_n will_v not_o contain_v those_o book_n which_o shall_v be_v write_v if_o all_o particular_n be_v write_v by_o which_o hiperbolicall_a speacke_v his_o mind_n be_v to_o express_v that_o multitude_n of_o book_n which_o must_v be_v write_v if_o all_o the_o action_n of_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v write_v thing_n hiderbole_n be_v a_o excessive_a speech_n either_o in_o advaunce_v or_o de●●praesting_v any_o thing_n c._n neither_o aught_o we_o to_o judge_v this_o a_o absurd_a hyperbole_n see_v we_o bear_v with_o many_o thing_n in_o profane_a writer_n we_o must_v not_o only_o consider_v the_o number_n of_o christ_n work_n but_o also_o we_o must_v way_n the_o weight_n and_o greatness_n of_o they_o the_o divine_a majesty_n of_o christ_n which_o to_o man_n sense_n and_o understanding_n ●s_v infinite_a do_v in_o those_o his_o work_n wonderful_o shine_v if_o the_o evangelist_n have_v respect_n unto_o this_o as_o one_o astonish_v exclame_v that_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v not_o able_a to_o conceive_v and_o comprehend_v a_o just_a and_o full_a narration_n who_o will_v marvel_v b._n and_o very_o see_v the_o act_n of_o christ_n be_v almost_o infinite_a who_o can_v have_v remember_v or_o weigh_v all_o thing_n with_o fruit_n to_o what_o end_n then_o shall_v they_o have_v be_v write_v for_o it_o have_v not_o be_v meet_v that_o we_o shall_v have_v neglect_v they_o c._n furthermore_o he_o be_v not_o to_o be_v reprehend_v for_o use_v a_o old_a and_o accustom_a figure_n to_o commend_v the_o excellency_n of_o the_o work_n of_o christ_n bu_n furthermore_o who_o see_v not_o that_o the_o same_o be_v a_o full_a and_o perfect_v kind_n of_o doctrine_n which_o lead_v &_o bring_v unto_o that_o end_n to_o the_o which_o it_o be_v ordain_v and_o appoint_v but_o the_o euamgelical_a history_n be_v ordain_v to_o show_v unto_o we_o a_o way_n how_o we_o may_v obtain_v eternal_a life_n the_o which_o we_o obtain_v by_o faith_n in_o christ_n the_o which_o way_n it_o do_v most_o plain_o and_o plentiful_o teach_v us._n therefore_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o most_o perfect_a kind_n of_o doctrine_n and_o that_o the_o evangelist_n have_v put_v a_o sum_n in_o writing_n which_o may_v suffice_v to_o instruct_v we_o in_o the_o faith_n and_o also_o to_o lead_v we_o in_o the_o way_n to_o everlasting_a life_n although_o they_o have_v not_o deliver_v unto_o we_o word_n for_o word_n all_o thing_n that_o christ_n both_o speak_v and_o do_v b._n those_o thing_n therefore_o be_v write_v which_o be_v well_o weigh_v be_v plentiful_a enough_o to_o instruct_v we_o in_o all_o godliness_n i_o will_v to_o god_n they_o be_v so_o exact_o discuss_v to_o embrace_v godliness_n as_o they_o be_v narrow_o sift_v &_o stretch_v to_o maintain_v contention_n and_o brawl_n c._n wherefore_o he_o be_v sufficient_o learn_v and_o instruct_v which_o have_v profit_v in_o the_o read_n of_o this_o scripture_n and_o very_o see_v the_o apostle_n be_v ordain_v of_o god_n to_o be_v witness_n unto_o we_o as_o they_o have_v faithful_o do_v their_o duty_n so_o also_o be_v it_o our_o part_n whole_o to_o depend_v upon_o their_o testimony_n and_o too_o desire_v no_o more_o than_o they_o have_v utter_v special_o see_v their_o pen_n have_v be_v dyrect_v and_o govern_v by_o the_o assure_a providence_n of_o god_n lest_o withovermuch_o matter_n they_o shall_v oppress_v our_o weak_a capacity_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o have_v choice_n may_v deliver_v so_o much_o unto_o we_o as_o he_o which_o be_v only_a wise_n and_o the_o wellspring_n itself_o of_o god_n wisdom_n know_v to_o be_v expedient_a for_o us._n a._n but_o to_o make_v a_o end_n of_o this_o exposition_n of_o s._n john_n let_v we_o note_v that_o we_o have_v here_o describe_v &_o true_o offer_v unto_o we_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n that_o true_a and_o natural_a son_n of_o god_n consubstantial_a and_o coequal_a with_o the_o father_n in_o all_o thing_n but_o in_o the_o fullness_n of_o time_n according_a to_o the_o prophet_n he_o be_v incarnate_a for_o we_o he_o suffer_v he_o true_o die_v and_o be_v undoubted_o raise_v again_o from_o death_n and_o be_v make_v king_n and_o lord_n of_o all_o thing_n this_o christ_n see_v he_o be_v appoint_v of_o god_n the_o father_n and_o give_v unto_o we_o to_o be_v the_o fullness_n of_o all_o grace_n and_o truth_n that_o lamb_n of_o god_n which_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n that_o ladder_n and_o gate_n of_o heaven_n that_o exalt_a serpent_n which_o make_v the_o deadly_a poison_n hurtless_a that_o water_n refresh_v the_o thirsty_a that_o son_n reconcile_a we_o to_o the_o father_n that_o bread_n of_o life_n that_o light_o of_o the_o world_n that_o shepherd_n of_o the_o sheep_n the_o door_n the_o resurrection_n the_o life_n the_o grow_a wheat_n corn_n the_o conqueror_n of_o the_o prince_n of_o this_o world_n the_o example_n of_o life_n the_o way_n the_o truth_n the_o true_a and_o fruitful_a vine_n to_o be_v short_a the_o redemption_n salvation_n satisfaction_n and_o righteousness_n of_o all_o the_o faithful_a in_o the_o whole_a world_n see_v i_o say_v christ_n be_v the_o plentiful_a treasury_n of_o all_o these_o riches_n and_o grace_n unto_o we_o let_v we_o give_v thanks_n unto_o god_n the_o father_n of_o the_o same_o jesu_n christ_n who_o have_v not_o spare_v his_o only_a son_n but_o have_v give_v he_o for_o we_o to_o redeem_v we_o from_o all_o iniquity_n and_o to_o make_v we_o a_o holy_a and_o acceptable_a people_n unto_o himself_o devout_o give_v to_o all_o good_a work_n that_o be_v now_o deliver_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n from_o the_o hand_n of_o all_o our_o enemy_n we_o may_v serve_v he_o in_o holiness_n and_o righteousness_n before_o he_o all_o the_o day_n of_o our_o life_n to_o he_o be_v glory_n empire_n and_o dominion_n now_o and_o for_o ever_o amen_n finis_fw-la laus_fw-la deo_fw-la ¶_o imprint_v at_o london_n by_o thomas_n marsh_n dwell_v in_o fleetstreet_n near_o unto_o saint_n dunsion_n church_n
desert_n where_o the_o lord_n feed_v the_o multitude_n for_o luke_n say_v that_o the_o lord_n go_v a_o part_n by_o ship_n into_o a_o desert_a place_n of_o the_o city_n of_o bethsaida_n therefore_o the_o lord_n command_v he_o to_o go_v before_o he_o toward_o bethsaida_n to_o the_o side_n of_o the_o shore_n either_o because_o this_o be_v the_o more_o convenient_a place_n of_o passage_n or_o else_o because_o by_o this_o commandment_n he_o intend_v somewhat_o else_o which_o be_v unknown_a to_o us._n that_o also_o which_o mathewe_n and_o mark_n have_v that_o they_o go_v over_o to_o the_o land_n of_o genesar_n be_v nothing_o contrary_a to_o that_o which_o john_n write_v that_o they_o go_v to_o capernaum_n because_o they_o speak_v general_o of_o the_o land_n to_o the_o which_o they_o arrive_v and_o john_n perticularlye_o of_o the_o city_n capernaum_n to_o which_o they_o come_v therefore_o there_o be_v no_o such_o disagréement_n between_o these_o place_n as_o may_v at_o the_o first_o sight_n seem_v to_o be_v and_o it_o be_v now_o dark_a c._n john_n pretermit_v many_o circumstance_n which_o the_o other_o have_v as_o by_o read_v they_o you_o may_v see_v 18._o and_o the_o sea_n arise_v with_o a_o great_a wound_n that_o blue_v this_o history_n be_v expound_v in_o the_o fouretéene_a chapter_n of_o matthew_n from_o the_o forty_o and_o eight_o verse_n unto_o the_o fiftye_a and_o three_o verse_n 19_o so_o when_o they_o have_v row_v about_o five_o and_o twenty_o or_o thirty_o furlong_n they_o see_v jesus_n walk_v on_o the_o sea_n and_o draw_v nigh_o to_o the_o ship_n and_o they_o be_v afraid_a b._n because_o the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n do_v not_o sufficient_o perceive_v and_o know_v the_o lord_n power_n by_o the_o miracle_n of_o the_o loaf_n they_o be_v to_o be_v exercise_v by_o this_o perryll_n and_o danger_n of_o the_o sea_n r._n for_o the_o tempest_n of_o the_o sea_n be_v not_o raise_v about_o the_o disciple_n by_o chance_n but_o by_o the_o wise_a dispensation_n of_o christ_n he_o be_v absent_a whereby_o his_o presence_n may_v the_o more_o earnest_o be_v desire_v of_o his_o disciple_n and_o may_v learn_v how_o necessary_a christ_n be_v in_o adversitye_n affliction_n affliction_n euenso_fw-la the_o godly_a be_v afflict_v with_o cross_n with_o affliction_n and_o with_o calamity_n that_o they_o may_v with_o more_o fervent_a prayer_n call_v upon_o christ_n by_o faith_n contrarywyse_o the_o wicked_a the_o more_o they_o be_v afflict_v the_o far_o they_o go_v from_o god_n for_o they_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v the_o lord_n in_o tribulation_n but_o satan_n c._n and_o it_o may_v seem_v very_o absurd_a that_o the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n be_v so_o vex_v when_o other_o have_v quiet_a sail_v but_o so_o the_o lord_n oftentimes_o exercise_v his_o with_o grevous_a perrille_n that_o they_o may_v the_o more_o familliarlye_o know_v he_o in_o time_n of_o their_o deliveraunce_n a._n read_v for_o large_a matter_n in_o the_o fouretéene_n of_o matthew_n and_o in_o the_o sixth_o of_o mark_n also_o 20._o but_o he_o say_v unto_o they_o it_o be_v i_o be_v not_o afraid_a c._n here_o s._n john_n set_v before_o we_o as_o in_o a_o glass_n what_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v we_o can_v conceyve_v without_o the_o word_n and_o what_o it_o bring_v for_o if_o he_o geve_v unto_o we_o but_o a_o bare_a show_n of_o his_o divinitye_n only_o by_o and_o by_o we_o fall_v to_o our_o own_o imagination_n and_o every_o man_n make_v to_o himself_o a_o idol_n in_o steed_n of_o christ_n after_o the_o error_n of_o the_o mind_n follow_v tremble_v and_o confuse_a fear_n of_o the_o mind_n miracle_n knowledge_n of_o god_n come_v rather_o by_o the_o word_n than_o by_o miracle_n but_o when_o he_o begin_v to_o speak_v by_o and_o by_o by_o his_o voice_n we_o receive_v sound_a and_o perfect_a knowledge_n and_o then_o we_o have_v joy_n in_o our_o mind_n and_o peace_n of_o conscience_n for_o there_o be_v great_a weight_n in_o those_o word_n it_o be_v i_o be_v not_o afraid_a for_o we_o be_v here_o teach_v that_o we_o have_v sufficient_a cause_n of_o trust_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o christ_n in_o so_o much_o that_o we_o may_v be_v in_o peace_n and_o safety_n but_o this_o pertain_v to_o none_o save_v only_o to_o the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n for_o afterward_o we_o shall_v see_v that_o the_o wicked_a by_o the_o same_o voice_n be_v throw_v down_o at_o his_o foot_n the_o voice_n of_o christ_n will_v discern_v the_o wicked_a from_o the_o child_n of_o god_n 18.6_o john_n 18.6_o for_o he_o be_v send_v a_o judge_n to_o destroy_v the_o reprobate_n and_o unbeléeving_a wherefore_o they_o can_v not_o abide_v his_o sight_n but_o they_o be_v by_o and_o by_o confound_v but_o the_o godly_a who_o know_v that_o he_o be_v give_v to_o they_o for_o a_o merciful_a saviour_n so_o soon_o as_o they_o hear_v his_o word_n which_o be_v to_o they_o a_o sure_a pledge_n both_o of_o his_o divine_a love_n and_o also_o of_o their_o salvation_n do_v recover_v their_o strength_n as_o it_o be_v from_o death_n to_o life_n and_o do_v joyful_o behold_v the_o clear_a sky_n after_o the_o stormy_a tempest_n and_o do_v dwell_v in_o the_o earth_n in_o peace_n and_o be_v conqueror_n of_o all_o evil_a do_v set_v his_o defence_n against_o all_o perrille_n 21._o and_o they_o will_v have_v receyve_v he_o into_o the_o ship_n and_o immediatelye_a the_o ship_n be_v at_o the_o land_n whether_o they_o go_v the_o other_o evangelist_n say_v that_o they_o receyve_v he_o into_o the_o ship_n the_o which_o our_o evangelist_n do_v not_o deny_v but_o say_v that_o by_o and_o by_o the_o ship_n arrive_v to_o the_o land_n whether_o they_o go_v the_o miracle_n consist_v in_o this_o that_o he_o walk_v upon_o the_o sea_n and_o that_o he_o make_v the_o sea_n calm_a and_o thyrd_o that_o the_o ship_n by_o and_o by_o arrive_v to_o land_n by_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n mathewe_n add_v a_o four_o part_n concern_v peter_n in_o the_o fouretéene_a chapter_n c._n therefore_o we_o see_v here_o that_o the_o lord_n do_v not_o only_o erect_v and_o comfort_v his_o disciple_n with_o his_o word_n but_o also_o in_o very_a deed_n deliver_v they_o from_o fear_n allay_v the_o tempest_n m._n let_v we_o learn_v therefore_o by_o this_o example_n to_o who_o we_o be_v bind_v for_o this_o that_o be_v so_o oftentimes_o tempt_v we_o be_v not_o overcome_v in_o temptation_n 22._o the_o day_n follow_v when_o the_o people_n which_o stand_v on_o the_o other_o side_n of_o the_o sea_n see_v that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o ship_n there_o save_o that_o one_o whereunto_o his_o discyple_n be_v enter_v and_o that_o jesus_n go_v not_o in_o with_o his_o disciple_n into_o the_o ship_n but_o that_o his_o discyple_n be_v go_v away_o alone_o bu_n by_o little_a and_o little_a the_o eangelist_n descend_v to_o more_o nigh_o occasion_n of_o that_o most_o divine_a sermon_n which_o the_o lord_n make_v in_o the_o school_n of_o the_o capernait_v concern_v the_o sum_n and_o brief_a compendium_n of_o our_o religion_n name_o that_o he_o be_v the_o true_a son_n of_o god_n send_v of_o the_o father_n from_o heaven_n into_o the_o world_n to_o quicken_v all_o mankind_n of_o the_o which_o quicken_a the_o faithful_a that_o believe_v in_o he_o be_v partaker_n but_o the_o circumstance_n which_o the_o evangelist_n put_v down_o here_o pertain_v to_o this_o end_n to_o teach_v that_o the_o multitude_n perceive_v that_o christ_n go_v over_o the_o lake_n by_o his_o divine_a power_n and_o not_o by_o mariner_n skill_n that_o therefore_o which_o christ_n do_v in_o walk_v upon_o the_o water_n do_v not_o only_o profit_v the_o disciple_n to_o confirm_v their_o faith_n but_o be_v yet_o more_o fruitful_a because_o the_o day_n follow_v the_o whole_a multitude_n may_v easy_o gather_v that_o he_o be_v carry_v over_o by_o his_o own_o power_n and_o not_o by_o ship_n 23._o howbeit_o there_o come_v other_o ship_n from_o tiberias_n nigh_o unto_o the_o place_n where_o they_o do_v eat_v bread_n after_o that_o the_o lord_n have_v give_v thanks_n after_o the_o lord_n have_v give_v thanks_n c._n this_o repetition_n of_o thanksgiving_n be_v not_o in_o vain_a for_o his_o meaning_n be_v that_o christ_n obtain_v by_o prayer_n that_o those_o few_o loaf_n do_v suffice_v to_o feed_v so_o many_o man_n and_o because_o we_o be_v cold_a and_o slow_a to_o prayer_n he_o do_v twice_o put_v we_o in_o mind_n of_o the_o same_o therefore_o we_o ought_v the_o more_o to_o note_n this_o say_n because_o we_o see_v at_o this_o day_n a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n like_o brute_n beast_n to_o give_v themselves_o to_o security_n 24._o when_o the_o people_n therefore_o see_v that_o jesus_n be_v not_o there_o neither_o his_o disciple_n they_o also_o take_v ship_n and_o come_v to_o capernaum_n seek_v for_o